Selected quad for the lemma: doctrine_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
doctrine_n apostle_n faith_n tradition_n 2,505 5 8.9778 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A13155 An abridgement or suruey of poperie conteining a compendious declaration of the grounds, doctrines, beginnings, proceedings, impieties, falsities, contradictions, absurdities, fooleries, and other manifold abuses of that religion, which the Pope and his complices doe now mainteine, and vvherewith they haue corrupted and deformed the true Christian faith, opposed vnto Matthew Kellisons Suruey of the new religion, as he calleth it, and all his malicious inuectiues and lies, by Matthevv Sutcliffe. Sutcliffe, Matthew, 1550?-1629. 1606 (1606) STC 23448; ESTC S117929 224,206 342

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

sincere_o than_o they_o albeit_o we_o detest_v and_o renounce_v all_o popery_n but_o all_o those_o error_n and_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n both_o concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n which_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n &_o her_o lover_n by_o colour_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o by_o his_o persuasion_n and_o enforcement_n from_o time_n to_o time_n bave_v receive_v profess_a and_o teach_v either_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n &_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o else_o above_o the_o same_o and_o above_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a church_n neither_o do_v we_o otherwise_o single_a popery_n from_o christian_a religion_n than_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n do_v distinguish_v arianisme_n macedonianisme_n nestorianisme_n eutychianisme_n pelagianisme_n and_o other_o heresy_n from_o the_o true_a faith_n for_o although_o the_o arian_n macedonian_n nestorian_n eutychian_o pelagian_o and_o other_o heretic_n do_v hold_v in_o term_n the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n yet_o for_o that_o the_o first_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o second_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o three_o the_o union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n the_o four_o the_o verity_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n the_o five_o the_o necessity_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o add_v diverse_a novelty_n to_o the_o ancient_a faith_n they_o be_v repute_v heretic_n and_o by_o their_o heresy_n ancient_a christian_n understand_v not_o any_o point_n of_o christian_a faith_n but_o their_o singular_a opinion_n which_o they_o maintain_v obstinate_o against_o the_o faith_n the_o apostle_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v teach_v that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o christ_n jesus_n and_o deliver_v the_o same_o to_o their_o successor_n and_o they_o to_o other_o the_o first_o christian_n likewise_o receive_v the_o same_o pure_a and_o without_o corruption_n but_o as_o the_o envious_a man_n while_o the_o man_n of_o the_o house_n sleep_v sow_v tare_n among_o good_a corn_n as_o we_o read_v matth._n 13._o so_o false_a apostle_n and_o heretic_n from_o time_n to_o time_n have_v go_v about_o with_o their_o cockle_n and_o tare_n to_o corrupt_v the_o sincere_a doctrine_n of_o the_o faith_n abuse_v the_o negligence_n of_o true_a teacher_n to_o their_o own_o advantage_n but_o yet_o none_o more_o cunning_o and_o fraudulent_o than_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o complice_n for_o other_o heretic_n be_v soon_o espy_v by_o their_o opposition_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n &_o christ_n true_a church_n timely_o betray_v themselves_o but_o these_o under_o the_o title_n of_o apostolic_a man_n and_o catholic_n have_v corrupt_v the_o apostolic_a and_o catholic_a faith_n and_o under_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o the_o church_n have_v undermine_v the_o foundation_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o under_o their_o sheep_n clothing_n have_v cover_v their_o raven_a and_o wolvish_a nature_n and_o so_o have_v they_o lurk_v many_o year_n mingle_v their_o tradition_n and_o invention_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o for_o truth_n deliver_v erroneous_a and_o superstitious_a doctrine_n and_o under_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n endeavour_v to_o erect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n at_o the_o first_o they_o clog_v religion_n with_o diverse_a superfluous_a and_o superstitious_a ceremony_n &_o load_v christian_n with_o the_o burden_n of_o their_o decretales_fw-la and_o censure_n but_o in_o the_o end_n they_o corrupt_v both_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n &_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n boniface_n the_o 3._o obtain_v of_o phocas_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v repute_v head_n of_o other_o church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o the_o wicked_a assembly_n under_o irene_n that_o semipagan_a empress_n at_o nice_a the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n begin_v first_o to_o be_v establish_v &_o this_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n willing_o embrace_v use_v this_o occasion_n to_o establish_v their_o own_o kingdom_n &_o to_o free_v themselves_o from_o the_o government_n of_o the_o emperor_n then_o also_o the_o superstitious_a worship_n of_o saint_n relic_n begin_v to_o be_v authorise_v and_o unwritten_a tradition_n under_o the_o title_n of_o apostolic_a authority_n to_o be_v commend_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o three_o action_n of_o that_o synod_n the_o french_a king_n charles_n the_o great_a and_o his_o father_n pipin_n and_o other_o their_o successor_n endow_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o great_a temporal_a possession_n which_o make_v they_o strong_a and_o powerful_a nicolas_n the_o 2._o in_o a_o certain_a synod_n at_o rome_n first_o decree_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v present_a in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o handle_v with_o the_o priest_n hand_n and_o press_v with_o the_o tooth_n and_o this_o fall_v out_o about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1059._o gregory_n the_o 7._o first_o begin_v to_o handle_v the_o temporal_a sword_n and_o manifest_o to_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o roman_a emperor_n before_o his_o time_n say_v otho_n frisingensis_n we_o do_v not_o read_v of_o any_o emperor_n excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n nether_a do_v ever_o any_o bishop_n of_o rome_n presume_v to_o depose_v the_o emperor_n before_o he_o some_o allege_v ambroses_n example_n but_o that_o show_v that_o bishop_n never_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o depose_v prince_n but_o only_o to_o refrain_v from_o communicate_v with_o they_o that_o which_o gregory_n the_o seven_o begin_v that_o in_o the_o end_n his_o successor_n obtain_v for_o by_o their_o practice_n they_o subdue_v the_o emperor_n and_o give_v way_n to_o the_o turk_n the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v first_o establish_v by_o innocent_a the_o three_o in_o a_o synod_n at_o lateran_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1215._o then_o also_o come_v in_o the_o necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v bring_v in_o first_o by_o the_o synod_n at_o constance_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1414._o there_o also_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o accident_n in_o the_o eucharist_n do_v subsist_v without_o a_o subject_n in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o florence_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1439._o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n and_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v decree_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o synod_n there_o also_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o 7._o sacrament_n be_v first_o propound_v to_o the_o armenian_n as_o proceed_v from_o the_o synod_n neither_o do_v we_o read_v of_o the_o form_n of_o extreme_a unction_n and_o other_o popish_a sacrament_n there_o set_v down_o before_o this_o time_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o error_n and_o superstition_n of_o popery_n be_v establish_v and_o confirm_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1564._o for_o before_o that_o time_n the_o schoolman_n dispute_v pro_fw-la and_o contra_fw-la but_o since_o that_o they_o have_v make_v it_o unlawful_a to_o hold_v otherwise_o than_o that_o synod_n prescribe_v in_o matter_n there_o new_o determine_v now_o they_o have_v as_o it_o be_v give_v a_o perfect_a form_n and_o full_a authority_n to_o that_o doctrine_n which_o before_o be_v not_o either_o perfect_o know_v of_o all_o or_o in_o all_o point_n allow_v of_o all_o so_o that_o whatsoever_o the_o papist_n vant_n of_o the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o doctrine_n yet_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o the_o full_a establishment_n of_o it_o as_o it_o be_v now_o deliver_v can_v be_v prove_v or_o show_v before_o this_o conventicle_n than_o their_o missal_n breviaries_n and_o office_n receive_v a_o great_a alteration_n or_o rather_o a_o new_a form_n than_o they_o innovate_v diverse_a point_n of_o doctrine_n both_o concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n to_o relate_v all_o the_o particular_a error_n and_o abuse_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v a_o matter_n infinite_a for_o there_o be_v no_o point_n almost_o wherein_o the_o papist_n vary_v not_o from_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o article_n concern_v the_o holy_a trinity_n except_v beside_o that_o they_o vary_v in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_v daily_a but_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o popery_n wherein_o we_o charge_v they_o to_o have_v digress_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v these_o first_o they_o have_v teach_v novelty_n and_o false_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o very_a ground_n of_o faith_n the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n but_o they_o believe_v the_o church_n to_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o pope_n irenaeus_n lib._n 3._o c._n 1._o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v first_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o afterward_o deliver_v the_o same_o in_o scripture_n that_o they_o may_v be_v a_o
pretence_n do_v reject_v the_o old_a translation_n or_o use_v any_o interpretation_n contrary_a to_o the_o romish_a church_n meaning_n they_o condemn_v stapleton_n in_o his_o book_n entitle_v principia_fw-la doctrinalia_fw-la do_v deliver_v unto_o we_o seven_o ground_n or_o principle_n of_o his_o religion_n the_o first_o be_v the_o church_n the_o second_o the_o pope_n the_o three_o the_o mean_v use_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o judgement_n the_o four_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n in_o judgement_n the_o five_o his_o power_n in_o tax_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n the_o six_o his_o certain_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n the_o seven_o his_o power_n in_o deliver_v doctrine_n not_o write_v these_o i_o say_v be_v his_o ground_n and_o principle_n absurd_o devise_v confuse_o dispose_v and_o ridiculous_o propound_v as_o god_n willing_a shall_v be_v show_v otherwhere_o now_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o declare_v that_o whatsoever_o he_o bable_v elsewhere_o of_o scripture_n counsel_n &_o father_n yet_o here_o they_o be_v all_o suppress_v in_o this_o division_n or_o at_o the_o least_o conceal_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n or_o pope_n which_o in_o his_o preface_n to_o gregory_n the_o 13._o he_o call_v supremum_fw-la numen_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la that_o be_v the_o supreme_a god_n of_o the_o world_n and_o who_o to_o he_o be_v all_o in_o all_o likewise_o in_o his_o preface_n to_o his_o relection_n of_o doctrinal_a principle_n he_o seem_v direct_o to_o exclude_v the_o scripture_n christianae_n religionis_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la habemus_fw-la say_v he_o ab_fw-la ipsis_fw-la literis_fw-la apostolicis_fw-la &_o evangelicis_fw-la uliud_fw-la that_o be_v we_o have_v another_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n diverse_a from_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o prophet_n if_o he_o exclude_v not_o scripture_n yet_o he_o admit_v they_o not_o otherwise_o than_o according_a to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n nay_o without_o the_o pope_n declaration_n he_o do_v tedious_o discourse_n that_o christian_n be_v not_o to_o receive_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n the_o decretale_a epistle_n of_o the_o pope_n no_o doubt_n they_o admit_v for_o the_o foundation_n of_o their_o faith_n for_o in_o the_o rubric_n of_o their_o decree_n c._n in_o canonicis_fw-la do_v 19_o they_o do_v determine_v that_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la be_v to_o be_v number_v among_o canonical_a scripture_n inter_fw-la canonicas_fw-la scripturas_fw-la say_v they_o decretales_fw-la epistolae_fw-la connumerantur_fw-la likewise_o gelasius_n c._n sancta_fw-la romana_fw-la do_v 15._o define_v that_o the_o pope_n decretale_a epistle_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o veneration_n in_o the_o same_o decretale_a gelasius_n authorise_v the_o roman_a martyrologe_n or_o legend_n of_o martyr_n neither_o can_v kellison_n or_o his_o kettle_n companion_n deny_v this_o to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o rammish_a i_o will_v say_v romish_a religion_n see_v these_o martyrologe_n and_o legend_n contain_v diverse_a tradition_n which_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n will_v have_v all_o papist_n to_o receive_v with_o equal_a affection_n to_o scripture_n canus_n lib._n 1._o loc_fw-la theolog_fw-la c._n 1._o assign_v ten_o place_n out_o of_o which_o he_o say_v divine_n be_v to_o draw_v argument_n the_o first_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n the_o second_o the_o authority_n of_o tradition_n not_o write_v the_o three_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o four_o the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n the_o five_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n where_o we_o be_v to_o note_v that_o more_o honest_o than_o his_o companion_n he_o make_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o differ_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o six_o be_v the_o authority_n of_o ancient_a father_n the_o seven_o the_o authority_n of_o romish_a school_n doctor_n the_o eight_o natural_a reason_n the_o nine_o the_o authority_n of_o philosopher_n the_o ten_o the_o authority_n of_o writer_n of_o story_n so_o we_o see_v how_o he_o build_v his_o faith_n upon_o man_n as_o well_o as_o upon_o god_n and_o match_v tradition_n not_o write_v with_o the_o most_o divine_a writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o conjoin_v the_o authority_n of_o counsel_n and_o father_n nay_o of_o schoolman_n and_o philosopher_n with_o the_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n frame_v to_o we_o rather_o a_o humane_a than_o a_o divine_a foundation_n of_o christian_a faith_n martin_n perez_n a_o plain_a deal_n papist_n know_n that_o all_o those_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n betwixt_o his_o fellow_n and_o we_o be_v ground_v rather_o upon_o tradition_n then_o scripture_n do_v entitle_v his_o whole_a discourse_n of_o these_o matter_n de_fw-fr traditionibus_fw-la that_o be_v a_o discourse_n of_o tradition_n final_o bellarmine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr pontif._n rom._n cap._n 31._o do_v call_v the_o pope_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o build_n of_o the_o church_n fundamentum_fw-la aedisicij_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la and_o in_o his_o preface_n before_o his_o book_n the_o pontisice_n rom._n he_o say_v that_o the_o seat_n of_o peter_n or_o the_o pope_n chair_n be_v the_o approve_a stone_n the_o corner_n and_o precious_a stone_n place_v in_o the_o soundation_n of_o which_o the_o prophet_n i_o say_v speak_v c._n 8._o and_o 28._o and_o with_o he_o concur_v sanders_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o rock_n of_o the_o church_n stapleton_n also_o declare_v the_o matter_n most_o plain_o in_o praefat_fw-la in_o relect_v princip_n doctr_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v necessary_o place_v in_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n teach_v we_o in_o who_o he_o say_v he_o hear_v god_n speak_v to_o us._n his_o word_n be_v in_o hac_fw-la docentis_fw-la hominis_fw-la authoritate_fw-la he_o speak_v of_o the_o pope_n in_o qua_fw-la deum_fw-la loquentem_fw-la audimus_fw-la religionis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la cognoscenda_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la necessariò_fw-la pom_fw-la credimus_fw-la and_o this_o other_o must_v necessary_o also_o hold_v for_o they_o hold_v he_o to_o be_v the_o supreme_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n and_o a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o a_o lawgiver_n to_o our_o conscience_n bind_v all_o man_n conscience_n by_o his_o law_n which_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n as_o bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la pontifice_fw-la rom._n c._n 16._o say_v of_o all_o casuiste_n a_o pitiful_a case_n therefore_o it_o be_v wherein_o the_o papist_n stand_v who_o conscience_n be_v chain_v with_o so_o many_o bond_n this_o then_o be_v find_v in_o the_o survey_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o popish_a religion_n let_v we_o also_o consider_v what_o conclusion_n may_v be_v hence_o infer_v that_o we_o may_v as_o well_o survey_v the_o conclusion_n as_o the_o premise_n first_o it_o follow_v that_o these_o ground_n be_v blasphemous_a both_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o enditer_n and_o author_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o christ_n jesus_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o finisher_n of_o our_o say_v the_o doctrine_n and_o religion_n of_o popery_n can_v be_v clear_a of_o blasphemy_n for_o to_o match_v popish_a decretales_fw-la with_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o pope_n determination_n with_o god_n law_n be_v derogatory_n to_o god_n holy_a spirit_n and_o a_o plain_a disparagement_n to_o god_n holy_a law_n likewise_o it_o be_v blasphemous_a to_o accuse_v the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o insufficiency_n and_o imperfection_n and_o to_o attribute_v more_o certainty_n and_o perspicuity_n to_o the_o decretales_fw-la of_o the_o pope_n then_o to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n it_o be_v also_o blasphemous_a either_o to_o remove_v christ_n out_o of_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n or_o at_o the_o least_o to_o join_v the_o pope_n with_o he_o in_o the_o foundation_n and_o that_o as_o a_o more_o necessary_a foundation_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o stapleton_n say_v the_o same_o also_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 3._o ephes_n 2._o and_o of_o s._n james._n c._n 4._o in_o the_o first_o of_o which_o place_n we_o find_v that_o no_o other_o foundation_n can_v be_v lay_v of_o the_o church_n but_o christ_n jesus_n in_o the_o 2._o we_o read_v that_o the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n in_o the_o 3._o we_o understand_v that_o there_o be_v only_o one_o lawgiver_n and_o judge_n which_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o destroy_v it_o be_v final_o very_o impious_a and_o blasphemous_a to_o assirme_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o more_o certain_a and_o superior_a judge_n than_o god_n himself_o speak_v to_o we_o in_o scripture_n or_o then_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n that_o be_v lead_v into_o all_o truth_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n of_o other_o blasphemy_n of_o popery_n
commit_v fornication_n in_o thought_n than_o to_o marry_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o only_o covet_v but_o also_o usurp_v diverse_a part_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o thus_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v by_o the_o law_n the_o papist_n not_o only_o by_o their_o practice_n but_o also_o by_o their_o doctrine_n overthrow_v the_o law_n the_o pope_n by_o his_o dispensation_n annull_v and_o frustrate_v the_o law_n his_o complice_n more_o regard_v the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la than_o the_o eternal_a law_n of_o the_o live_a god_n this_o law_n of_o god_n they_o say_v may_v be_v persect_o perform_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o as_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o action_n they_o hold_v that_o it_o may_v be_v perform_v without_o grace_n ex_fw-la quo_fw-la efficitur_fw-la say_v bellarmine_n lib._n 5._o de_fw-fr lib._n arbit_fw-la c._n 9_o tot_o be_o dei_fw-la legem_fw-la absque_fw-la auxilio_fw-la gratiae_fw-la quoad_fw-la substant_a iam_fw-la actionis_fw-la ab_fw-la hominibus_fw-la recte_fw-la seruari_fw-la posse_fw-la in_o the_o same_o book_n c._n 2._o he_o say_v that_o without_o any_o special_a help_n of_o god_n man_n may_v know_v veritatem_fw-la moralem_fw-la or_o the_o moral_a law_n with_o the_o circumstance_n thereof_o which_o be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n declare_v man_n weakness_n and_o blindness_n but_o also_o overthrow_v the_o necessity_n of_o god_n grace_n for_o if_o man_n without_o grace_n both_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o be_v able_a according_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o action_n to_o perform_v the_o law_n then_o be_v he_o not_o dead_a in_o trespass_n and_o sin_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v nor_o do_v the_o papist_n believe_v in_o christ_n which_o say_v without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o do_v it_o not_o then_o appear_v that_o popery_n be_v false_a erroneous_a and_o repugnant_a to_o god_n law_n &_o the_o ancient_a faith_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n chap._n four_o of_o the_o damnable_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v faith_n and_o justification_n the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n but_o the_o papist_n do_v so_o handle_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o same_o can_v quicken_v any_o but_o be_v like_o rather_o to_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o fall_n and_o death_n of_o many_o first_o they_o teach_v that_o justify_n faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o firm_a assent_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o if_o a_o firm_a assent_n to_o every_o word_n of_o god_n do_v justify_v then_o be_v christian_n justify_v by_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o devil_n as_o well_o as_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o as_o well_o be_v they_o justify_v by_o believe_v the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n as_o believe_v that_o grace_n and_o mercy_n be_v offer_v they_o in_o jesus_n christ_n nay_o as_o well_o may_v the_o devil_n have_v justify_v say_v as_o faithful_a christian_n for_o they_o do_v give_v their_o assent_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v truth_n but_o these_o be_v most_o damnable_a doctrine_n second_o they_o say_v that_o christian_n be_v as_o well_o to_o believe_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o write_v as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o doctor_n of_o trent_n will_v have_v both_o receive_v with_o equal_a affection_n the_o author_n of_o the_o censure_n of_o colleinsol_n 91._o teach_v christian_n to_o believe_v not_o only_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n but_o also_o such_o point_n as_o be_v deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n but_o if_o this_o be_v grant_v then_o will_v it_o follow_v that_o christian_n be_v as_o well_o to_o believe_v the_o pope_n or_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o god_n himself_o and_o that_o faith_n be_v build_v upon_o man_n word_n and_o not_o only_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o last_o that_o faith_n be_v build_v not_o only_o upon_o uncertainty_n but_o also_o upon_o falsehood_n for_o such_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n many_o be_v uncertain_a and_o some_o very_a false_a and_o erroneous_a as_o be_v particular_o show_v in_o diverse_a treatise_n against_o romish_a tradition_n three_o they_o teach_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o gift_n and_o light_n by_o which_o a_o man_n be_v illustrate_v do_v firm_o assent_v &_o adhere_v to_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n est_fw-la dei_fw-la donum_fw-la &_o lumen_fw-la say_v canisius_n cathechismi_n c._n 1._o quo_fw-la illustrate_v we_o homo_fw-la firmiter_fw-la assentitur_fw-la atque_fw-la adhaeret_fw-la ijs_fw-la quae_fw-la ut_fw-la credantur_fw-la sunt_fw-la divinitus_fw-la revelata_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la nobis_fw-la proposita_fw-la now_o by_o the_o church_n they_o understand_v the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o of_o this_o it_o follow_v first_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o faith_n for_o how_o can_v a_o church_n propose_v and_o teach_v matter_n to_o itself_o this_o do_v utter_o destroy_v the_o nature_n of_o relation_n and_o therefore_o i_o think_v the_o learned_a romanist_n will_v hardly_o confess_v this_o to_o be_v true_a it_o follow_v next_o that_o christian_n be_v neither_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n nor_o to_o profess_v the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n unless_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n propose_v they_o unto_o us._n but_o this_o be_v most_o absurd_a and_o impious_a for_o we_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o not_o in_o the_o pope_n nor_o in_o the_o church_n adhere_v to_o he_o that_o these_o consequent_n be_v good_a it_o be_v evident_a because_o they_o no_o less_o require_v that_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o that_o they_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n four_o as_o well_o do_v canisius_n require_v that_o christian_n believe_v that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o papist_n do_v hold_v it_o as_o the_o article_n of_o the_o trinity_n the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o christ_n incarnation_n for_o all_o these_o article_n he_o join_v together_o catech._n c._n 1._o §_o 4._o but_o he_o can_v not_o say_v worse_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o overthrow_v the_o whole_a christian_a faith_n for_o the_o popish_a real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v contrary_a to_o christ_n meaning_n to_o word_n of_o scripture_n exposition_n of_o father_n the_o nature_n of_o sacrament_n and_o to_o humane_a reason_n and_o fence_n as_o at_o large_a be_v justify_v in_o my_o book_n de_fw-fr missa_fw-la against_o bellarmine_n five_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o wicked_a and_o reprobate_a nay_o that_o the_o devil_n of_o hell_n may_v have_v true_a faith_n but_o our_o saviour_n christ_n say_v john_n 3_o that_o whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v everlasting_a life_n so_o it_o follow_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n that_o the_o reprobate_n and_o the_o devil_n of_o hell_n may_v be_v save_v six_o they_o affirm_v that_o charity_n be_v the_o form_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o just_a do_v live_v by_o faith_n of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o faith_n have_v a_o form_n of_o itself_o whereby_o it_o quicken_v us._n furthermore_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o make_v one_o virtue_n or_o habit_n the_o form_n of_o another_o and_o if_o this_o be_v tolerable_a that_o one_o quality_n be_v the_o form_n of_o another_o yet_o will_v it_o seem_v far_o more_o probable_a that_o faith_n shall_v be_v the_o form_n and_o life_n of_o charity_n and_o work_n for_o that_o without_o faith_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o please_v god_n than_o that_o charity_n shall_v be_v the_o form_n of_o faith_n which_o do_v follow_v of_o faith_n seventh_o the_o jebusite_n of_o collein_n fol._n 122._o teach_v that_o faith_n be_v only_o of_o general_a proposition_n and_o hope_v of_o particular_n so_o it_o follow_v of_o their_o doctrine_n that_o no_o christian_n ought_v to_o believe_v that_o he_o or_o any_o other_o particular_a person_n have_v his_o sin_n forgive_v or_o be_v of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n or_o shall_v be_v save_v but_o if_o this_o be_v true_a then_o do_v not_o the_o jebusite_n believe_v that_o themselves_o shall_v rise_v again_o or_o appear_v in_o judgement_n further_o then_o can_v they_o not_o believe_v that_o pope_n clement_n or_o leo_n or_o paul_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n or_o that_o they_o be_v to_o subject_v themselves_o unto_o he_o or_o that_o this_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o such_o other_o particular_a proposition_n eight_o they_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n or_o by_o imputation_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n but_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 1._o show_v that_o christ_n be_v make_v to_o
apostle_n he_o shall_v declare_v himself_o to_o want_v both_o head_n and_o brain_n for_o in_o the_o canticle_n c._n 2._o and_o ephes_n 5._o the_o title_n of_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n be_v declare_v to_o belong_v to_o christ_n and_o he_o only_o the_o scripture_n declare_v to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n gregory_n lib._n 4._o ep_n 38._o ad_fw-la joan._n constantinopol_n show_v that_o neither_o paul_n nor_o andrew_n nor_o john_n nor_o peter_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o all_o member_n of_o the_o church_n under_o one_o head_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n do_v teach_v we_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n consist_v of_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n and_o such_o be_v peter_n command_v to_o feed_v god_n say_v by_o his_o prophet_n isay_n c._n 11._o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o hurt_v nor_o kill_v in_o all_o his_o holy_a mountain_n and_o that_o the_o wolf_n shall_v dwell_v with_o the_o lamb_n and_o the_o pard_n he_o with_o the_o kid_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v full_a of_o blood_n and_o whole_o uphold_v by_o cruelty_n in_o france_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n have_v cause_v above_o two_o hundred_o thousand_o person_n to_o be_v murder_v for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o fire_n and_o butcher_n axe_n of_o their_o executioner_n have_v consume_v also_o infinite_a christian_n in_o italy_n spain_n england_n scotland_n germany_n and_o the_o low_a country_n very_o ignorant_a therefore_o he_o be_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n that_o suppose_v that_o the_o massacre_a romish_a church_n be_v found_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n the_o prophet_n daniel_n do_v prophecy_n how_o a_o certain_a king_n shall_v arise_v that_o shall_v speak_v word_n of_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o most_o high_a and_o consume_v his_o saint_n and_o that_o shall_v think_v that_o he_o may_v change_v time_n and_o law_n the_o apostle_n also_o 2._o thess_n 2._o show_v that_o there_o shall_v come_v a_o depart_a and_o that_o the_o man_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v disclose_v and_o exalt_v himself_o against_o all_o that_o be_v call_v god_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v sit_v in_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n s._n john_n also_o in_o his_o apocalypse_n show_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v rise_v after_o the_o decay_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o give_v life_n to_o that_o state_n and_o that_o the_o great_a whore_n shall_v sit_v upon_o the_o seven_o hill_n and_o have_v her_o garment_n die_v red_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o saint_n but_o this_o argue_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v not_o christian_a religion_n ground_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n but_o rather_o antichristian_a heresy_n found_v upon_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la and_o schoolmen_n fond_a and_o foolish_a invention_n final_o it_o be_v not_o only_o desperate_a ignorance_n but_o also_o mere_a madness_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o ground_n doctrine_n heresy_n and_o blasphemy_n which_o before_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o be_v derive_v out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n will_v kellison_n the_o pope_n grand_a surueier_n undertake_v to_o prove_v unto_o we_o all_o the_o pope_n tradition_n concern_v the_o mass_n the_o dirge_n and_o office_n for_o the_o dead_a purgatory_n indulgence_n holy_a water_n holy_a candle_n paschal_n lamb_n rascal_n friar_n and_o monk_n and_o such_o like_a trash_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n he_o shall_v but_o lose_v his_o labour_n and_o percase_o his_o wit_n too_o for_o in_o their_o divine_a writing_n such_o fond_a superstitious_a and_o impious_a doctrine_n have_v no_o defence_n nor_o shelter_n but_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o find_v their_o true_a beginning_n then_o must_v he_o search_v the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la the_o writing_n of_o schoolman_n and_o canonist_n and_o other_o the_o pope_n adherent_n and_o there_o he_o shall_v not_o only_o find_v out_o the_o first_o author_n but_o also_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o novelty_n foolery_n and_o impiety_n of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n chap._n xiii_o that_o popery_n be_v either_o condemn_v or_o not_o know_v by_o king_n and_o prince_n profess_v christian_n religion_n in_o old_a time_n the_o pope_n agent_n when_o they_o be_v upon_o their_o own_o dunghill_n and_o among_o their_o own_o disciple_n and_o favourer_n do_v make_v great_a crack_n as_o if_o the_o popish_a religion_n which_o be_v now_o teach_v at_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a religion_n profess_v by_o ancient_a king_n prince_n and_o emperor_n of_o rome_n that_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n but_o who_o so_o listen_v to_o read_v the_o ancient_a confession_n of_o christian_a king_n and_o the_o law_n make_v by_o they_o both_o for_o maintenance_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o for_o the_o repress_v of_o diverse_a error_n shall_v find_v that_o the_o ground_n doctrine_n impiety_n &_o absurdity_n of_o popery_n be_v either_o disallow_v by_o they_o or_o unknowen_a unto_o they_o the_o first_o christian_a king_n of_o britain_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v bede_n and_o other_o of_o latter_a time_n for_o in_o more_o ancient_a history_n there_o be_v no_o record_n of_o such_o a_o king_n or_o such_o matter_n as_o then_o pass_v be_v lucius_n but_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o the_o popish_a mass_n be_v then_o hatch_v or_o that_o eleutherius_fw-la bishop_n of_o rome_n pretend_v the_o universal_a monarchy_n of_o the_o church_n nay_o we_o read_v that_o irenaeus_n do_v make_v as_o great_a account_n of_o other_o church_n as_o of_o rome_n albeit_o the_o same_o be_v first_o place_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o splendour_n and_o authority_n of_o that_o city_n furthermore_o lucius_n neither_o have_v image_n nor_o worship_v they_o nor_o do_v he_o give_v latria_n to_o the_o cross_n of_o purgat_fw-la one_o and_o indulgence_n he_o can_v not_o hear_v any_o thing_n for_o that_o eleutherius_fw-la as_o yet_o take_v not_o upon_o he_o to_o deliver_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n nor_o to_o grant_v pardon_n a_o poena_fw-la &_o culpa_fw-la final_o if_o kellison_n seek_v to_o prove_v the_o article_n of_o popery_n before_o mention_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o lucius_n you_o shall_v soon_o see_v that_o the_o man_n will_v be_v at_o a_o stand_n the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n of_o rome_n be_v constantine_n the_o great_a but_o many_o act_n of_o his_o declare_v that_o he_o be_v neither_o a_o slave_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o a_o professor_n of_o popery_n for_o first_o by_o his_o authority_n both_o be_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a assemble_v and_o the_o act_n thereof_o establish_v as_o enschius_n in_o vita_fw-la constantini_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n do_v testify_v second_o that_o faith_n which_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a publish_v he_o profess_v but_o therein_o be_v not_o one_o article_n of_o popery_n establish_v but_o rather_o diverse_a refute_v as_o namely_o the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v christ_n humanity_n and_o the_o popish_a real_a presence_n and_o dissolve_v priest_n marriage_n for_o if_o christ_n be_v true_a man_n then_o be_v not_o his_o body_n invisible_a and_o impalpable_a in_o the_o sacrament_n again_o if_o christ_n body_n be_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n than_o be_v not_o the_o same_o in_o every_o pix_n if_o the_o same_o be_v to_o come_v from_o heaven_n than_o be_v not_o the_o same_o to_o creep_v out_o of_o a_o pix_n if_o marriage_n of_o priest_n be_v honourable_a and_o not_o to_o be_v dissolve_v as_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o counceil_n of_o nice_a by_o the_o advice_n of_o paphnutius_fw-la then_o do_v the_o papist_n teach_v doctrine_n of_o devil_n that_o condemn_v such_o marriage_n and_o separate_v priest_n from_o their_o wife_n three_o all_o the_o act_n of_o that_o council_n be_v confirm_v and_o not_o only_o receive_v by_o constantine_n but_o that_o show_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n then_o have_v no_o more_o authority_n in_o his_o province_n than_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n in_o his_o as_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n testify_v the_o 4._o canon_n show_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o great_a authority_n in_o ordain_v bishop_n than_o other_o metropolitan_n the_o five_o canon_n equal_v his_o power_n in_o excommunication_n to_o that_o which_o other_o bishop_n have_v to_o abridge_v this_o matter_n we_o find_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v as_o well_o subject_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a as_o other_o bishop_n final_o we_o find_v that_o constantine_n make_v law_n for_o church_n government_n in_o his_o time_n and_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nay_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o be_v say_v in_o the_o counterfeit_a donation_n of_o constantine_n have_v their_o privilege_n from_o constantine_n and_o not_o contrariwise_o privilegium_fw-la romanae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la pontifici_fw-la
platina_n say_v obtain_v of_o phocas_n the_o emperor_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v call_v and_o hold_v the_o head_n of_o other_o church_n the_o council_n of_o rome_n that_o authorize_v the_o popish_a real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v celebrate_v under_o pope_n nicolas_n the_o 2._o some_o 1050._o year_n after_o christ_n the_o 2._o nicene_n council_n that_o establish_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n in_o some_o sort_n be_v assemble_v long_o before_o under_o the_o reign_n of_o irene_n but_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n can_v not_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o western_a church_n till_o long_o after_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n that_o decree_v transubstantiation_n be_v assemble_v in_o the_o time_n of_o innocentius_n the_o 3._o the_o council_n of_o constance_n that_o first_o bring_v in_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n and_o the_o subsistence_n of_o accident_n without_o subject_n be_v summon_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1414_o the_o synod_n of_o florence_n that_o first_o establish_v the_o 7._o sacrament_n and_o begin_v to_o talk_v of_o their_o form_n and_o confirm_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o purgatory_n publish_v her_o decree_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1439._o the_o act_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n that_o make_v up_o a_o complete_a body_n of_o popery_n be_v confirm_v by_o pius_n the_o 4._o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1564._o and_o this_o be_v the_o antiquity_n of_o those_o conventicle_n that_o do_v principal_o confirm_v the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n the_o schoolman_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1200._o the_o father_n of_o they_o all_o be_v peter_n lombard_n that_o flourish_v some_o 1140._o year_n after_o christ_n the_o canonist_n begin_v after_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n the_o nine_o that_o live_v and_o flourish_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n 1230._o the_o chief_a founder_n of_o popery_n be_v the_o pope_n by_o their_o authority_n the_o cardinal_n by_o their_o counseill_n the_o monk_n and_o friar_n by_o their_o book_n and_o preach_v the_o masspriest_n by_o their_o mass_v and_o practise_v the_o dinel_n himself_o by_o his_o craft_n malice_n and_o violence_n the_o pope_n authority_n in_o ecclesiastical_a canse_v be_v not_o great_a before_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n the_o three_o nor_o in_o temporal_a matter_n before_o gregory_n the_o seven_o boniface_n the_o nine_o as_o theodoric_n à_fw-la niem_fw-la testify_v by_o craft_n enter_v upon_o the_o temporal_a inrisdiction_n of_o rome_n the_o cardinal_n be_v but_o parish_n priest_n until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o pope_n of_o a_o priest_n become_v a_o prince_n the_o monk_n in_o the_o west_n church_n be_v descend_v from_o benet_n of_o nursia_n that_o live_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 530._o the_o friar_n arise_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1230._o their_o first_o father_n be_v francis_n and_o dominicke_n the_o last_o brood_n of_o friar_n fly_v abroad_o into_o the_o world_n under_o the_o lead_n of_o ignatius_n loyola_n a_o lame_a soldier_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1540_o the_o devil_n be_v bind_v up_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n count_v from_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n begin_v to_o be_v loose_v again_o about_o the_o time_n of_o innocent_a the_o three_o and_o by_o all_o fraud_n to_o work_v in_o the_o head_n of_o pope_n friar_n monk_n and_o masspriest_n and_o with_o violence_n to_o make_v opposition_n against_o all_o those_o that_o preach_v the_o truth_n the_o foundation_n therefore_o of_o popery_n be_v so_o late_o lay_v and_o the_o chief_a founder_n thereof_o begin_v to_o stir_v so_o long_o after_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n it_o be_v great_a simplicity_n if_o we_o shall_v affirm_v popery_n to_o be_v ancient_a but_o the_o same_o do_v most_o clear_o appear_v by_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n of_o popery_n which_o the_o pope_n factour_n maintain_v against_o us._n first_o they_o hold_v that_o holy_a scripture_n be_v imperfect_a and_o no_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c_o 12._o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v only_o apart_o of_o the_o rule_n but_o none_o but_o heretic_n in_o ancient_a time_n do_v derogate_v from_o scripture_n 2._o they_o teach_v that_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o equal_a affection_n but_o that_o be_v first_o determine_v in_o the_o 4._o session_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n 3._o in_o that_o wicked_a conventicle_n also_o they_o first_o determine_v that_o the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n shall_v be_v authentical_a 4._o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v sovereign_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o principal_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n be_v a_o point_n teach_v of_o late_a since_o friar_n begin_v to_o steel_n their_o face_n with_o a_o double_a mask_n of_o impudence_n 5._o before_o the_o late_a conventicle_n of_o trent_n we_o never_o read_v but_o that_o concupiscence_n be_v sin_n both_o in_o the_o regenerate_a and_o unregenerat_a as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 6._o stapleton_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o his_o relection_n of_o doctrinal_a principle_n be_v the_o first_o man_n that_o ever_o teach_v that_o we_o hear_v god_n speak_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v found_v upon_o his_o authority_n 7._o the_o first_o that_o ever_o call_v the_o pope_n a_o god_n on_o the_o earth_n be_v the_o pope_n canonist_n they_o likewise_o begin_v first_o to_o call_v he_o the_o head_n and_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n a_o universal_a bishop_n 8._o the_o papist_n of_o late_a time_n only_o begin_v to_o prohibit_v scripture_n to_o be_v read_v public_o in_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o to_o repine_v at_o god_n people_n that_o desire_v to_o read_v they_o in_o those_o tongue_n for_o the_o ancient_a father_n exhort_v man_n to_o read_v scripture_n 9_o since_o dioclesian_n time_n we_o do_v not_o read_v of_o any_o that_o burn_v book_n of_o scripture_n beside_o papist_n neither_o do_v any_o since_o his_o time_n hold_v out_o his_o foot_n to_o be_v kiss_v 10._o of_o late_a time_n papist_n believe_v no_o catholic_a church_n but_o that_o which_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n whereas_o in_o time_n past_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v disperse_v through_o all_o nation_n and_o not_o universal_o subject_v to_o other_o head_n than_o christ_n 11._o the_o romish_a church_n now_o observe_v not_o the_o old_a canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o they_o be_v common_o call_v ex_fw-la 84._o apostolicis_fw-la canonibus_fw-la say_v medina_n de_fw-fr sacror_fw-la hom_n continent_n c._n 105._o quos_fw-la clemens_n romanus_n pontifex_fw-la &_o eorundem_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la discipulus_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la coegit_fw-la vix_fw-la sex_n aut_fw-la octo_fw-la latina_n ecclesia_fw-la nunc_fw-la obseruat_fw-la martin_n perez_n also_o de_fw-la tradit_fw-la part_n 3._o c._n de_fw-fr authorit_fw-fr cc._n apost_n confess_v that_o the_o apostle_n canon_n now_o be_v not_o well_o observe_v 12._o the_o ancient_a christian_n do_v never_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n to_o s._n michael_n to_z peter_n and_o paul_n and_o other_o saint_n as_o the_o romish_a masspriest_n do_v 13._o of_o late_o the_o clerk_n at_o mass_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o absolve_v the_o priest_n and_o to_o pray_v for_o he_o a_o matter_n both_o strange_a and_o absurd_a 14._o the_o confession_n of_o the_o faith_n set_v out_o by_o pius_n the_o four_o concern_v romish_a tradition_n instification_n by_o work_n the_o seven_o sacrament_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n indulgence_n and_o such_o like_a point_n of_o popery_n be_v never_o hear_v of_o before_o the_o time_n of_o that_o wicked_a pope_n 15._o the_o papist_n can_v not_o show_v that_o any_o christian_a before_o of_o late_o dare_v cut_v out_o the_o second_o commandment_n out_o of_o the_o first_o table_n as_o they_o have_v presume_v to_o do_v in_o their_o short_a catechism_n this_o they_o do_v know_v themselves_o to_o be_v guilty_a in_o worship_v image_n of_o the_o breach_n thereof_o 16._o the_o decree_n of_o sixtus_n the_o four_o concern_v the_o conception_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n without_o original_a sin_n be_v but_o a_o late_a device_n 17._o it_o be_v not_o long_o since_o the_o papist_n teach_v that_o venial_a sin_n be_v do_v away_o with_o holy_a water_n 18._o he_o shall_v be_v very_o shameless_a that_o will_v say_v that_o christian_n in_o time_n past_o do_v whip_v themselves_o either_o go_v in_o procession_n or_o before_o the_o crucifix_n as_o now_o papist_n do_v hope_v to_o redeem_v their_o sin_n with_o their_o own_o blood_n 19_o ancient_a christian_n never_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v sin_n to_o transgress_v
of_o christ_n and_o that_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n of_o cosmas_n and_o damianus_n and_o other_o saint_n but_o where_o such_o a_o wicked_a and_o blasphemous_a company_n as_o make_v not_o only_a saint_n but_o also_o the_o idolatrous_a masspriest_n mediator_n for_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v repute_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v visible_a before_o these_o wicked_a missal_n be_v frame_v we_o find_v not_o in_o any_o ancient_a record_n 10._o the_o romish_a church_n worship_v the_o cross_n and_o the_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n with_o latria_n or_o divine_a worship_n but_o such_o a_o church_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v never_o visible_a in_o the_o world_n 11._o in_o the_o missal_n breviaries_n and_o other_o ritual_a book_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n we_o find_v diverse_a prayer_n and_o confession_n to_o angel_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o other_o saint_n nay_o to_o the_o cross_n and_o the_o image_n give_v to_o veronica_n and_o these_o prayer_n be_v both_o practise_v and_o defend_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o if_o all_o the_o pope_n lanterne-bearer_n and_o disciple_n be_v set_v to_o seek_v for_o such_o a_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n they_o shall_v but_o lose_v their_o labour_n and_o spend_v their_o wit_n in_o vain_a 12._o the_o apostle_n canon_n as_o be_v say_v do_v excommunicate_v such_o as_o do_v not_o communicate_v be_v present_a at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n we_o may_v not_o therefore_o think_v that_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n be_v visible_a in_o those_o time_n see_v they_o think_v it_o sufficient_a for_o their_o disciple_n to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o mass_n although_o they_o receive_v nothing_o 13._o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n no_o man_n ever_o hear_v that_o christian_n gape_v and_o gaze_v on_o the_o priest_n administer_a the_o lord_n supper_n or_o that_o they_o receive_v the_o one_o kind_n and_o not_o the_o other_o the_o popish_a church_n therefore_o in_o those_o time_n be_v invisible_a 14._o in_o those_o time_n also_o neither_o be_v the_o eucharist_n celebrate_v nor_o the_o scripture_n read_v in_o tongue_n not_o understand_v of_o the_o multitude_n nor_o do_v the_o people_n pray_v in_o strange_a tongue_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o missificall_a congregation_n therefore_o of_o papist_n which_o pray_v not_o know_v what_o they_o say_v and_o be_v present_a at_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n and_o celebration_n of_o sacrament_n in_o strange_a tongue_n understand_v nothing_o be_v not_o yet_o creep_v out_o of_o cacus_n his_o den_n nor_o apparent_a in_o the_o world_n 15._o the_o modern_a papist_n believe_v that_o such_o as_o in_o this_o life_n satisfy_v not_o for_o their_o sin_n commit_v after_o baptism_n be_v to_o satisfy_v for_o the_o same_o in_o purgatory_n they_o believe_v also_o that_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o indulgence_n be_v able_a to_o redeem_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n and_o to_o remit_v all_o the_o temporal_a pain_n due_a for_o sin_n but_o such_o a_o church_n as_o this_o be_v never_o to_o be_v see_v for_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n to_o abridge_v this_o discourse_n it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n by_o diverse_a other_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o diverse_a other_o custom_n in_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n and_o diverse_a other_o form_n of_o government_n all_o new_o invent_v practise_v and_o maintain_v by_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n to_o declare_v and_o prove_v that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o new_a model_n of_o a_o church_n never_o see_v nor_o know_v to_o antiquity_n but_o by_o these_o few_o particular_n the_o same_o do_v most_o clear_o appear_v already_o if_o the_o papist_n then_o seek_v to_o bring_v we_o back_o to_o the_o form_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n then_o must_v they_o abandon_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n embrace_v the_o modern_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o sacrament_n late_o broach_v by_o the_o idle_a schoolman_n and_o confirm_v in_o the_o late_a conventicle_n of_o trent_n and_o adhere_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o as_o it_o profess_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n publish_v by_o ancient_a counsel_n of_o the_o church_n so_o it_o renounce_v all_o heresy_n and_o nouclty_n bring_v in_o by_o papist_n and_o other_o heretic_n and_o as_o it_o renounce_v their_o false_a doctrine_n so_o it_o detest_v their_o treacherous_a practice_n chap._n lii_o that_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o motive_n to_o the_o modern_a romish_a faith_n allege_v by_o papist_n may_v as_o well_o be_v allege_v by_o heathen_a man_n and_o turk_n as_o by_o they_o all_o this_o notwithstanding_o the_o papist_n challenge_v to_o themselves_o the_o name_n title_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o bring_v forth_o a_o whole_a squadron_n of_o motive_n to_o draw_v simple_a soul_n to_o like_v of_o their_o sect_n and_o to_o entangle_v they_o with_o their_o error_n bellarmine_n de_fw-fr notis_fw-la eccles_n c._n 3._o say_v that_o the_o proper_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v these_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n antiquity_n continuance_n universality_n succession_n of_o bishop_n consent_n in_o doctrine_n miracle_n prophecy_n temporal_a felicity_n and_o such_o like_a other_o bring_v unity_n universality_n holiness_n of_o life_n and_o such_o like_a bristol_n in_o his_o motive_n stand_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n and_o heretic_n miracle_n vision_n scripture_n tradition_n father_n martyr_n go_v out_o rising_z afterward_o succession_n immutability_n unity_n judge_n infallible_a obedient_a subject_n visibility_n and_o other_o mark_n of_o like_a nature_n but_o as_o well_o may_v the_o turk_n and_o idolatrous_a heathen_a nation_n allege_v these_o mark_n and_o motive_n as_o the_o papist_n and_o some_o of_o they_o do_v better_o agree_v to_o turk_n and_o idolatrous_a paynim_n then_o to_o idolatrous_a and_o heretical_a papist_n for_o as_o papist_n call_v themselves_o catholic_n and_o give_v the_o name_n of_o heretic_n to_o other_o so_o do_v the_o turk_n call_v themselves_o musulman_n or_o true_a believer_n and_o heathen_a idolater_n call_v themselves_o pious_a worshipper_n of_o the_o god_n and_o in_o regard_n of_o themselves_o both_o turk_n and_o paynim_n take_v christian_n to_o be_v impious_a person_n and_o heretic_n the_o turk_n call_v papist_n idolater_n and_o the_o heathen_a in_o time_n pass_v call_v christian_n atheist_n as_o for_o antiquity_n it_o agree_v far_o better_o to_o paynim_n and_o turk_n then_o to_o papist_n for_o heathen_a idolatry_n be_v long_o before_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n and_o the_o alcoran_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la that_o be_v publish_v by_o mahomet_n within_o 630._o year_n after_o christ_n these_o be_v commend_v and_o confirm_v by_o gregory_n the_o 9_o who_o enter_v a_o d._n 1227._o 3._o idolatry_n as_o it_o begin_v soon_o after_o the_o flood_n so_o it_o have_v ever_o since_o continue_v the_o blasphemous_a religion_n of_o turk_n har●_n continue_v ever_o since_o the_o time_n of_o mahomet_n but_o popery_n never_o receive_v a_o perfect_a form_n before_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n and_o in_o most_o place_n now_o be_v decay_v 4._o the_o heathen_a idolater_n allege_v for_o themselves_o amplitude_n and_o universality_n as_o well_o as_o the_o papist_n and_o so_o may_v the_o turk_n also_o for_o in_o time_n past_o all_o nation_n worship_v idol_n fave_v the_o jew_n and_o in_o our_o time_n far_o more_o nation_n be_v delude_v by_o mahomet_n and_o his_o priest_n then_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o masspriest_n the_o pope_n doctrine_n be_v confine_v within_o a_o few_o nation_n of_o europe_n mahometisme_n posless_v the_o great_a part_n of_o asia_n and_o africa_n and_o no_o small_a part_n of_o europe_n 5._o the_o turk_n ever_o since_o mahomet_n have_v have_v a_o succession_n of_o caliphaes_n and_o priest_n and_o among_o the_o heathen_a there_o never_o want_v a_o descent_n of_o sacrifice_a idolater_n but_o the_o papist_n can_v derive_v their_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n either_o in_o doctrine_n or_o descent_n of_o pope_n for_o neither_o be_v their_o doctrine_n apostolical_a nor_o be_v the_o pope_n the_o apostle_n successor_n beside_o that_o they_o be_v uncerteine_a both_o who_o be_v true_a pope_n and_o which_o succeed_v after_o peter_n and_o diverse_a bishop_n and_o pope_n of_o rome_n 6._o the_o paynim_n with_o one_o consent_n in_o time_n pass_v worship_v idol_n neither_o do_v any_o one_o among_o they_o call_v the_o matter_n in_o question_n the_o turk_n be_v so_o resolute_a in_o religion_n that_o they_o will_v have_v no_o dispute_v against_o any_o point_n of_o their_o doctrine_n but_o popish_a schoolman_n call_v all_o point_n of_o their_o religion_n in_o question_n neither_o do_v they_o so_o well_o agree_v in_o any_o article_n but_o there_o be_v some_o that_o hold_v singular_a opinion_n the_o scotist_n differ_v from_o the_o thomist_n and_o diverse_a opinion_n be_v hold_v by_o
not_o possible_a a_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v unless_o he_o believe_v the_o catholic_a faith_n but_o this_o catholic_a faith_n the_o papist_n believe_v not_o entire_o for_o neither_o do_v they_o give_v to_o christ_n humane_a flesh_n nor_o make_v he_o a_o perfect_a man_n thrust_v his_o body_n into_o a_o small_a piece_n of_o bread_n or_o rather_o into_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n where_o it_o be_v neither_o see_v nor_o feel_v as_o other_o man_n body_n be_v further_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v his_o ascension_n or_o that_o he_o shall_v come_v from_o heaven_n to_o judge_v quick_a &_o dead_a as_o be_v contain_v in_o that_o creedo_fw-la make_v their_o follower_n believe_v that_o his_o body_n be_v upon_o every_o altar_n and_o not_o be_v able_a to_o deny_v that_o he_o shall_v come_v out_o of_o the_o pix_n see_v they_o teach_v he_o be_v there_o our_o saviour_n christ_n matth_n 15._o teach_v we_o that_o such_o worship_n god_n in_o vain_a as_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n man_n precept_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popery_n as_o it_o add_v to_o ancient_a catholic_a religion_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o mass_n of_o humane_a invention_n devise_n and_o precept_n their_o decretales_fw-la be_v the_o pope_n devise_n their_o form_n of_o worship_n contain_v in_o the_o missal_n and_o breviaries_n be_v mere_o humane_a from_o man_n devise_n proceed_v the_o popish_a worship_n of_o angel_n saint_n image_n the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o resolution_n of_o case_n of_o conscience_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o pope_n law_n final_o the_o turn_n skipping_n heave_n greasing_n spitting_n and_o other_o ceremony_n of_o masspriest_n and_o their_o follower_n proceed_v from_o man_n invention_n popery_n therefore_o by_o christ_n rule_n be_v nothing_o but_o weariness_n and_o vexation_n of_o man_n soul_n while_o they_o seek_v to_o serve_v god_n by_o those_o mean_n by_o the_o chapter_n si_fw-fr papa_n do_v 40._o we_o learn_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v remiss_a and_o negligent_a in_o his_o office_n and_o silent_a in_o teach_v and_o lead_v innumerable_a people_n with_o he_o into_o hell_n but_o if_o the_o papist_n be_v to_o adhere_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o follow_v he_o how_o can_v they_o escape_v when_o he_o lead_v they_o into_o hell_n that_o they_o run_v not_o headlong_o into_o hell_n themselves_o also_o if_o then_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v scripture_n nor_o father_n yet_o their_o own_o decree_n may_v teach_v they_o that_o follow_v the_o pope_n innumerable_a papist_n run_v headlong_o into_o hell_n beside_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o father_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o boniface_n in_o the_o chapter_n si_fw-mi papa_n do_v 40._o diverse_a reason_n teach_v we_o that_o the_o papist_n hold_v firm_o and_o positive_o the_o erroneous_a doctrine_n of_o the_o modern_a church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v save_v for_o first_o no_o man_n can_v come_v unto_o the_o father_n but_o by_o christ_n jesus_n as_o he_o testify_v of_o himself_o john_n 14_o he_o show_v also_o that_o he_o be_v the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n 2._o teach_v we_o that_o there_o be_v no_o mediator_n betwixt_o god_n and_o man_n but_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n but_o the_o papist_n as_o they_o pretend_v come_v to_o god_n not_o only_o by_o christ_n but_o also_o by_o the_o virgin_n mary_n by_o angel_n and_o saint_n they_o seek_v out_o also_o new_a way_n &_o content_v not_o themselves_o with_o such_o as_o christ_n teach_v us._n final_o they_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o indulgence_n and_o every_o mass-priest_n by_o his_o mass_n be_v able_a to_o redeem_v man_n soul_n second_o he_o that_o build_v his_o faith_n upon_o other_o foundation_n than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n do_v build_v upon_o sand_n and_o not_o upon_o a_o firm_a foundation_n but_o the_o papist_n build_v their_o faith_n upon_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la upon_o unwritten_a and_o uncerteine_a tradition_n upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n upon_o miracle_n and_o prophecy_n report_v in_o the_o romish_a legend_n and_o such_o like_a fable_n do_v they_o not_o then_o build_v upon_o rumour_n foundation_n three_o the_o papist_n hope_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n and_o to_o be_v save_v by_o their_o work_n but_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 3._o teach_v we_o that_o man_n be_v justify_v without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o rom._n 6._o that_o eternal_a life_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n four_o the_o law_n of_o god_n pronounce_v he_o accurse_v that_o abide_v not_o in_o all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n to_o do_v they_o and_o a_o plain_a matter_n it_o be_v that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v that_o wilful_o break_v god_n law_n and_o never_o sorow_v nor_o crave_v pardon_n for_o his_o transgression_n but_o the_o papist_n teach_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o god_n law_n and_o enforce_v their_o follower_n to_o break_v it_o and_o that_o in_o diverse_a point_n god_n command_v we_o to_o have_v no_o other_o god_n but_o he_o but_o they_o honour_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o cross_v with_o divine_a worship_n they_o do_v also_o impart_v god_n worship_n to_o the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o to_o saint_n he_o forbid_v the_o take_n of_o god_n holy_a name_n in_o vain_a the_o pope_n of_o rome_n do_v dispense_v with_o oath_n and_o enforce_v man_n oftentimes_o to_o break_v they_o god_n command_v we_o to_o honour_v our_o parent_n the_o pope_n set_v the_o child_n against_o their_o parent_n final_o they_o allow_v public_a stew_n and_o set_v up_o shop_n of_o usury_n and_o massacre_v innocent_a christian_n direct_o against_o god_n commandment_n and_o that_o without_o all_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n or_o feel_v of_o their_o sin_n five_o papist_n hope_v to_o obtain_v remishon_fw-mi of_o sin_n by_o their_o own_o satisfaction_n by_o indulgence_n by_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n by_o mass_n by_o auricular_a confess_v on_o and_o popish_a absolution_n of_o masseprieste_n and_o diverse_a humane_a devise_n but_o rely_v upon_o these_o break_a reed_n there_o be_v no_o hope_n for_o they_o to_o be_v save_v for_o without_o the_o only_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n jesus_n apply_v to_o we_o by_o true_a faith_n there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n six_o without_o true_a faith_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o please_v god_n but_o their_o perverse_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o innumerable_a heresy_n of_o papist_n do_v declare_v that_o they_o have_v no_o true_a faith_n seventh_o the_o prophet_n david_n psal_n 15._o demand_v who_o shall_v rest_v upon_o god_n holy_a mountain_n answer_v among_o other_o thing_n he_o that_o slander_v not_o with_o his_o tongue_n nor_o do_v evil_a to_o his_o neighbour_n but_o the_o papist_n as_o be_v former_o show_v have_v no_o other_o mean_n to_o uphold_v their_o ruinous_a state_n but_o by_o lie_n and_o slander_n treason_n rebellion_n murder_n and_o massacre_n of_o innocent_a christian_n final_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a they_o shall_v be_v save_v that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o mean_n of_o their_o salvation_n and_o hold_v heresy_n repugnant_a to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o repentance_n from_o dead_a work_n and_o other_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n but_o the_o papist_n believe_v that_o christ_n be_v only_o the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o their_o salvation_n as_o if_o he_o have_v merit_v only_o that_o they_o may_v sauce_n themselves_o they_o teach_v also_o that_o man_n be_v justify_v formal_o by_o their_o own_o work_n &_o that_o their_o suppose_a sacrament_n and_o their_o pilgrimage_n and_o voluntary_a observance_n of_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o work_v perform_v according_a to_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la and_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n do_v justify_v last_o they_o teach_v and_o believe_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n to_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n of_o repentance_n and_o good_a work_n be_v they_o not_o then_o in_o miserable_a case_n now_o if_o any_o man_n ask_v what_o be_v then_o become_v of_o all_o those_o that_o either_o now_o die_v or_o in_o time_n past_a be_v dead_a in_o place_n where_o popery_n be_v or_o have_v be_v profess_v i_o answer_v that_o of_o those_o that_o hold_v the_o foundation_n and_o live_v well_o we_o hope_v well_o but_o we_o deny_v that_o such_o as_o live_v before_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n hold_v popery_n positive_o we_o hope_v also_o that_o many_o there_o be_v among_o the_o papist_n now_o which_o conform_v themselves_o to_o they_o in_o outward_a ceremony_n and_o yet_o believe_v not_o the_o error_n of_o popery_n positive_o but_o hold_v themselves_o to_o the_o old_a apostolic_a say_v and_o of_o these_o man_n salvation_n we_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o despair_v god_n grant_v that_o the_o
drive_v gregory_n the_o 7._o out_o of_o his_o seat_n and_o appoint_v another_o in_o his_o place_n henry_n the_o 5._o his_o son_n take_v paschalis_n prisoner_n and_o make_v he_o swear_v to_o certain_a article_n he_o break_v they_o afterward_o i_o confess_v but_o that_o be_v rather_o a_o argument_n of_o the_o pope_n perfidiousness_n than_o a_o proof_n against_o the_o emperor_n authority_n neither_o do_v the_o emperor_n succeed_v for_o many_o year_n cease_v to_o defend_v their_o right_n against_o the_o pope_n encrochment_n and_o usurpation_n until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o pope_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n and_o rebellion_n of_o subject_n have_v prevail_v against_o they_o and_o when_o they_o can_v not_o by_o force_n resist_v yet_o do_v they_o often_o publish_v their_o complaint_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o message_n of_o maximilian_n the_o first_o to_o the_o pope_n by_o certain_a memorial_n of_o charles_n the_o five_o concern_v wrong_v offer_v by_o the_o pope_n by_o the_o greenance_n collect_v by_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n present_v to_o adrian_n the_o 6._o by_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o bohemian_o english_a french_a and_o other_o nation_n philip_n the_o french_a king_n write_v to_o boniface_n the_o 8._o use_v these_o word_n sciat_fw-la tua_fw-la maxima_fw-la fatuitas_fw-la nos_fw-la in_o temporalibus_fw-la nulli_fw-la subesse_fw-la i_o do_v thy_o great_a foolery_n say_v he_o write_v to_o he_o to_o wit_n that_o for_o temporal_a matter_n we_o be_v subject_a to_o none_o the_o same_o king_n do_v also_o handle_v the_o pope_n nuntioe_n according_a to_o their_o deserve_n henry_n the_o 2._o as_o matthew_n paris_n testify_v forbid_v the_o payment_n of_o peter_n penny_n and_o such_o as_o appeal_v to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n he_o commit_v to_o prison_n appellantes_fw-la ad_fw-la curiam_fw-la rom._n mandavit_fw-la custodiae_fw-la afterward_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o colein_n he_o threatu_v to_o impugn_v the_o pope_n and_o to_o thrust_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n all_o his_o favourer_n papam_fw-la &_o omnes_fw-la suos_fw-la say_v he_o manifestè_fw-la impugnabimus_fw-la &_o quicunque_fw-la in_o terra_fw-la mea_fw-la inventus_fw-la fuerit_fw-la qui_fw-la papae_fw-la posthac_fw-la adhaerere_fw-la voluerit_fw-la expelletur_fw-la è_fw-la regno_fw-la happy_a have_v he_o be_v if_o he_o have_v always_o persist_v in_o this_o purpose_n the_o king_n of_o england_n afterward_o by_o their_o law_n against_o provision_n restrain_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o in_o the_o end_n that_o famous_a and_o worthy_a prince_n king_n henry_n the_o eight_o do_v utter_o exclude_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o agent_n from_o all_o jurisdiction_n within_o his_o kingdom_n furthermore_o albeit_o some_o prince_n be_v so_o senseless_a that_o they_o feel_v not_o the_o wrong_v offer_v they_o by_o the_o pope_n yet_o do_v such_o as_o love_v the_o honour_n of_o their_o country_n never_o cease_v to_o complain_v thereof_o alan_n chartier_n show_v that_o priest_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n be_v become_v most_o vile_a and_o that_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v alienate_v from_o the_o pope_n obedience_n corda_fw-la hominum_fw-la ab_fw-la obedientia_fw-la scilicet_fw-la papae_fw-la alienata_fw-la julian_n the_o cardinal_a writing_n to_o eugenius_n the_o four_o show_v it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v lest_o the_o laity_n shall_v fall_v upon_o the_o clergy_n ne_fw-la irruerent_fw-la in_o ecclesiasticos_fw-la laici_fw-la the_o german_n in_o the_o end_n of_o their_o grievance_n say_v that_o they_o neither_o will_v suffer_v nor_o can_v endure_v the_o wrong_n offer_v they_o by_o the_o pope_n dixerunt_fw-la germani_n principes_fw-la say_v he_o that_o report_v their_o grievance_n se_fw-la onera_fw-la papae_fw-la nec_fw-la perferre_fw-la velle_fw-la nec_fw-la tolerare_fw-la posse_fw-la nicholas_n de_fw-fr clemangis_n show_v that_o both_o prince_n and_o other_o murmur_v against_o the_o pope_n exaction_n charles_n the_o french_a king_n inveigh_v against_o benet_n the_o 13._o signify_v that_o god_n will_v displace_v the_o pope_n out_o of_o their_o seat_n for_o oppress_v and_o spoil_v christ_n sheep_n facti_fw-la sunt_fw-la greges_fw-la mei_fw-la in_o rapinam_fw-la etc._n etc._n propterea_fw-la cessare_fw-la eos_fw-la faciam_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la pascant_fw-la ulterius_fw-la gregem_fw-la meum_fw-la these_o word_n charles_n apply_v against_o the_o pope_n the_o english_a be_v excommunicate_v in_o king_n johns_n time_n call_v the_o pope_n agent_n marcidos_fw-la ribaldo_n that_o be_v rot_v rascal_n and_o signify_v that_o they_o will_v not_o endure_v their_o tyranny_n petrus_n de_fw-fr ferrarijs_fw-la in_o form_n resp_n rei_fw-la conventi_fw-la bewail_v the_o misery_n of_o christian_a prince_n that_o endure_v so_o many_o wrong_n at_o the_o pope_n hand_n and_o make_v themselves_o his_o slave_n and_o yet_o provide_v no_o remedy_n for_o it_o heu_fw-la miseri_fw-la imperatores_fw-la &_o principes_fw-la seculares_fw-la say_v he_o qui_fw-la haec_fw-la &_o alia_fw-la sustinetis_fw-la &_o vos_fw-la seruos_fw-la pontificum_fw-la facitis_fw-la &_o mundum_fw-la per_fw-la eos_fw-la infinity_n modis_fw-la usurpari_fw-la videtis_fw-la nec_fw-la de_fw-la remedio_fw-la cogitatis_fw-la christian_n prince_n and_o king_n therefore_o have_v always_o abhor_v the_o pope_n tyranny_n &_o refuse_v his_o religion_n and_o the_o more_o christian_n they_o have_v show_v themselves_o the_o more_o resistance_n they_o have_v make_v both_o against_o his_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n and_o his_o usurpation_n and_o abuse_n in_o government_n vlrichus_n vttenus_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o laurentius_n vallaes_n treatise_n against_o the_o counterfeit_a donation_n of_o constantine_n do_v thus_o exclaim_v against_o the_o pope_n as_o enemy_n and_o spoiler_n of_o all_o christian_n anon_o fuerunt_fw-la christianorum_fw-la host_n illi_fw-la pontifices_fw-la qui_fw-la omnium_fw-la ad_fw-la se_fw-la opes_fw-la attraxerunt_fw-la onmibus_fw-la liberis_fw-la seruitutem_fw-la moliti_fw-la sunt_fw-la qui_fw-fr imper_v to_o reges_fw-la pe●_n unia_fw-la cite_v de●l_fw-la aliabant_fw-la be_v not_o the_o pope_n enemy_n of_o christian_n which_o draw_v unto_o themselves_o the_o wealth_n of_o all_o and_o endeavour_v to_o oppress_v all_o free_a man_n which_o spoil_a king_n of_o their_o government_n and_o the_o subject_n of_o their_o money_n chap._n xiiii_o that_o the_o ancient_a britan_n and_o english_a be_v not_o first_o convert_v to_o popish_a religion_n let_v that_o abide_v in_o you_o say_v s._n john_n 1._o epist_n 2._o which_o you_o have_v hear_v from_o the_o beginning_n so_o likewise_o we_o say_v let_v we_o abide_v in_o that_o faith_n and_o let_v that_o faith_n abide_v in_o we_o that_o be_v first_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n scholar_n and_o successor_n in_o this_o island_n and_o let_v we_o not_o be_v carry_v away_o by_o the_o poleshorne_a crew_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o believe_v popish_a novelty_n and_o fable_n that_o the_o ancient_a christian_n of_o this_o land_n whether_o britan_n english_a or_o scots_a be_v not_o convert_v to_o popish_a religion_n that_o be_v now_o predominant_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n we_o have_v three_o most_o evident_a demonstration_n to_o assure_v us._n first_a those_o doctrine_n and_o ground_n of_o popery_n which_o before_o i_o have_v mention_v will_v never_o be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o the_o first_o planter_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o this_o land_n and_o very_o absurd_a it_o be_v to_o suppose_v they_o to_o have_v be_v the_o author_n of_o those_o heresy_n impiety_n and_o blasphemy_n which_o be_v so_o rife_o in_o popery_n if_o s._n peter_n or_o s._n paul_n or_o any_o of_o their_o scholar_n do_v plant_v religion_n here_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o they_o teach_v one_o thing_n and_o write_v another_o or_o that_o the_o scholar_n preach_v otherwise_o then_o they_o have_v learn_v from_o their_o master_n if_o joseph_n of_o arimathaea_n do_v first_o convert_v the_o britan_n and_o fugatius_n and_o damianus_n confirm_v they_o in_o the_o faith_n or_o if_o austen_n the_o monk_n and_o his_o fellow_n do_v first_o convert_v the_o saxon_n or_o english_a yet_o can_v it_o not_o be_v show_v that_o any_o one_o of_o these_o do_v teach_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o holy_a scripture_n be_v with_o equal_a affection_n to_o be_v receive_v or_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o popish_a holy_a water_n paschal_n lamb_n tosary_n image_n and_o such_o like_a tradition_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o that_o christ_n true_a body_n be_v tear_v with_o tooth_n and_o receive_v down_o into_o the_o belly_n and_o may_v be_v eat_v of_o dog_n and_o hog_n or_o that_o christian_n be_v justify_v by_o extreme_a unction_n or_o eat_v saltfish_n and_o redherring_n upon_o friday_n and_o fast_a day_n or_o that_o incense_n be_v to_o be_v burn_v to_o image_n or_o the_o sacrament_n adore_v for_o god_n and_o carry_v about_o in_o procession_n or_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o point_n of_o popery_n before_o mention_v either_o therefore_o let_v parson_n show_v we_o that_o the_o several_a point_n of_o popery_n before_o touch_v be_v teach_v by_o s._n peter_n the_o apostle_n and_o eleutherus_n and_o gregory_n
the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o therefore_o we_o may_v not_o think_v that_o they_o teach_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o body_n invisible_a or_o inpalpable_a or_o that_o his_o body_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n at_o one_o time_n and_o yet_o not_o continue_v to_o itself_o or_o that_o his_o soul_n be_v omnipotent_a or_o omniscient_a or_o that_o christian_n be_v to_o believe_v that_o dog_n and_o hog_n do_v eat_v christ_n body_n and_o yet_o that_o all_o the_o communicant_n save_o the_o priest_n be_v to_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n or_o that_o christ_n be_v only_o the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o salvation_n and_o that_o formal_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o save_v by_o our_o own_o work_n or_o that_o remission_n of_o sin_n can_v be_v obtain_v unless_o we_o come_v to_o auricular_a confession_n and_o have_v the_o masspriest_n absolution_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o indulgence_n out_o of_o superfluous_a merit_n of_o saint_n be_v able_a to_o deliver_v soul_n from_o purgatory_n or_o other_o popish_a heresy_n and_o wicked_a doctrine_n before_o mention_v for_o these_o doctrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o which_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o apostle_n preach_v be_v contain_v gregory_n the_o first_o lib._n 4._o epist_n 32._o do_v dislike_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n and_o call_v it_o sacrilegious_a and_o profane_a he_o do_v also_o condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n lib._n 7._o epist_n 109._o and_o lib._n 9_o epist_n 9_o and_o commend_v serenus_n the_o bishop_n of_o massilia_n for_o reprove_v the_o adoration_n of_o image_n neither_o do_v he_o allow_v any_o more_o than_o the_o historical_a use_n of_o they_o that_o purgatory_n which_o gregory_n the_o dialogist_n speak_v of_o differ_v much_o from_o popish_a purgatory_n be_v rather_o design_v for_o venial_a sin_n than_o for_o satisfaction_n for_o temporal_a pain_n after_o the_o fault_n remit_v lib._n moral_a 19_o c._n 16._o he_o show_v that_o the_o book_n of_o the_o maccabee_n be_v not_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o lib._n 14._o moral_n c._n 32._o that_o christ_n body_n be_v solid_a and_o not_o like_o a_o spirit_n and_o lib._n 4._o dial_n c._n 55._o that_o thing_n above_o in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v unite_v to_o thing_n below_o summa_fw-la imis_fw-la consociantur_fw-la of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o presence_n as_o the_o papist_n imagine_v nor_o any_o transubstantiation_n for_o if_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n reside_v above_o be_v unite_v to_o thing_n below_o then_o be_v not_o christ_n body_n include_v within_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o host_n nor_o be_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n abolish_v augustine_n the_o monk_n bring_v with_o he_o a_o cross_n and_o the_o image_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o a_o table_n and_o do_v sing_v litany_n as_o bede_n testify_v lib._n 1_o hist_o angl._n c._n 25._o but_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o hoe_v fill_v church_n with_o image_n or_o that_o he_o worship_v christ_n image_n or_o the_o cross_n with_o latria_fw-la or_o that_o in_o his_o litany_n he_o call_v upon_o saint_n or_o angel_n bede_n say_v they_o pray_v to_o god_n litanias_fw-la canentes_fw-la etc._n etc._n domino_fw-la supplicabant_fw-la if_o then_o we_o can_v find_v the_o point_n of_o popery_n which_o we_o refuse_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o in_o any_o record_n mention_v the_o doctrine_n of_o joseph_n of_o arimathaea_n eleutherius_fw-la gregory_n or_o austen_n but_o rather_o find_v they_o to_o be_v opposite_a to_o their_o doctrine_n and_o denise_v afterward_o then_o unless_o we_o mean_v to_o remove_v the_o ancient_a limit_n and_o bound_n set_v down_o to_o we_o by_o our_o father_n and_o to_o refuse_v the_o counsel_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proverb_n 22._o we_o may_v not_o return_v to_o popery_n forasmuch_o as_o the_o first_o converter_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o this_o land_n be_v no_o author_n nor_o favourer_n of_o popish_a superstition_n heresy_n impiety_n and_o blasphemy_n chap._n xv._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v most_o false_o term_v catholic_a religion_n and_o papist_n catholic_n catholic_a religion_n as_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n in_o his_o commonitory_n chap._n 3._o do_v teach_v we_o be_v that_o which_o always_o have_v be_v believe_v and_o of_o all_o christian_n we_o be_v to_o hold_v say_v he_o that_o which_o always_o have_v be_v believe_v of_o all_o christian_n for_o that_o be_v proper_o catholic_a but_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n contain_v in_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la and_z dispute_v of_o the_o canonist_n and_o schoolman_n have_v not_o always_o be_v believe_v of_o all_o christian_n their_o faith_n therefore_o be_v not_o catholic_a the_o assumption_n be_v prove_v not_o only_o by_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o decretales_fw-la gloss_n of_o canonist_n and_o sum_n and_o resolution_n of_o the_o school_n divine_v but_o also_o by_o the_o falsehood_n and_o contrariety_n of_o the_o doctrine_n therein_o contain_v nicholas_n in_o his_o decretale_a ego_fw-la berengarius_fw-la de_fw-mi consecrat_fw-mi do_v 2._o teach_v that_o christ_n body_n sensual_o be_v handle_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o priest_n and_o tear_v with_o tooth_n but_o this_o be_v contrary_n to_o scripture_n father_n and_o truth_n innocent_n in_o the_o chapter_n firmiter_fw-la de_fw-fr sum_n trinit_fw-la &_o fid_fw-we cath_z say_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v transubstantiat_fw-la into_o christ_n body_n which_o be_v false_a for_o christ_n say_v of_o bread_n which_o he_o take_v this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o canonist_n honour_n the_o pope_n as_o a_o god_n on_o earth_n as_o the_o head_n foundationmonah_o rcand_a spouse_n of_o the_o church_n the_o schoolman_n brabble_n one_o with_o another_o and_o sometime_o change_v their_o own_o opinion_n bellarmine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la purgat_fw-la c._n 3._o confess_v that_o thomas_n aquinas_n change_v his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o merit_n of_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n most_o schoolman_n build_v doctrine_n of_o faith_n upon_o philosophical_a ground_n and_o very_o both_o from_o scripture_n and_o father_n in_o their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o divine_a attribute_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o soul_n of_o merit_n of_o sacrament_n and_o diverse_a other_o point_n how_o then_o can_v we_o repute_v these_o doctrine_n to_o be_v catholic_a it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o catholic_n say_v vincentius_n lirinensis_n commonit_a c._n 34._o to_o keep_v the_o doctrine_n commit_v to_o they_o and_o leave_v with_o they_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o to_o avoid_v profane_a novelty_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o schoolman_n concern_v the_o divine_a attribute_n concern_v the_o example_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n bring_v by_o the_o master_n of_o sentence_n the_o eat_n of_o christ_n body_n by_o brute_n beast_n and_o diverse_a other_o point_n be_v full_a of_o profaneness_n and_o novelty_n their_o reason_n also_o be_v more_o philosophical_a and_o sophistical_a then_o apostolical_a all_o the_o point_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o and_o they_o be_v mere_a novelty_n as_o the_o decretales_fw-la whereon_o they_o depend_v declare_v leo_n epist_n 81._o say_v that_o there_o be_v one_o true_a only_o perfect_a and_o inviolable_a faith_n whereto_o nothing_o can_v be_v add_v and_o from_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v take_v but_o unto_o this_o faith_n the_o pope_n have_v add_v their_o determination_n concern_v tradition_n the_o carnal_a real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n transubstantiation_n the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n the_o pope_n vicarship_n general_a and_o universal_a power_n purgatory_n indulgence_n the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o diverse_a other_o point_n of_o doctrine_n do_v it_o not_o then_o appear_v that_o popery_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n come_v in_o after_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o christian_a catholic_a faith_n and_o add_v unto_o it_o furthermore_o as_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n be_v catholic_a and_o universal_a so_o heretical_a opinion_n be_v particular_a and_o peculiar_a to_o certain_a sect_n and_o person_n and_o time_n but_o we_o have_v show_v that_o popery_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o pack_n of_o old_a and_o new_a heresy_n last_o by_o many_o particular_n it_o may_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n have_v neither_o be_v teach_v at_o all_o time_n nor_o embrace_v of_o all_o christian_n nor_o spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n which_o do_v plain_o declare_v that_o neither_o the_o doctrine_n be_v catholic_a nor_o the_o professor_n thereof_o true_o term_v catholic_n first_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o imperfect_a rule_n and_o unsufficient_a without_o tradition_n and_o speak_v lewd_o of_o they_o call_v they_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n a_o kill_a and_o dead_a letter_n a_o matter_n of_o strife_n and_o what_o else_o they_o listen_v to_o devise_v in_o their_o
nor_o other_o virtue_n but_o only_o that_o he_o profess_v outward_o the_o romish_a religion_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n a_o matter_n of_o no_o great_a difficulty_n if_o a_o man_n take_v upon_o he_o the_o habit_n of_o a_o monk_n or_o a_o friar_n they_o make_v it_o a_o second_o baptisate_n and_o that_o state_n they_o say_v be_v a_o state_n of_o perfection_n so_o you_o see_v how_o easy_a a_o matter_n it_o be_v with_o papist_n not_o only_o to_o be_v a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o a_o perfect_a christian_n for_o who_o can_v take_v upon_o he_o a_o friar_n or_o monk_n weed_n in_o the_o apology_n for_o herodotus_n it_o be_v testify_v that_o a_o certain_a friar_n teach_v that_o the_o only_a way_n for_o the_o devil_n to_o be_v save_v be_v to_o put_v on_o saint_n francis_n his_o cowl_n further_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o grant_v pardon_n for_o fornication_n adultery_n incest_n rape_n murder_n perjury_n treachery_n sodomitry_n maranisme_n and_o all_o vice_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o pope_n penitentiary_n tax_n and_o that_o for_o no_o great_a sum_n of_o money_n now_o what_o more_o easy_a then_o to_o obtain_v the_o pope_n pardon_n if_o a_o man_n hear_v mass_n every_o sunday_n &_o holiday_n and_o confess_v at_o shrovetide_n and_o be_v housel_v at_o easter_n and_o fast_o from_o flesh_n and_o observe_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o romish_a precept_n and_o ceremony_n he_o be_v take_v for_o a_o good_a catholic_a but_o these_o be_v matter_n to_o be_v perform_v without_o any_o great_a difficulty_n the_o papist_n also_o teach_v that_o christian_n be_v justify_v by_o extreme_a unction_n which_o be_v a_o matter_n to_o be_v obtain_v at_o every_o pilled_a priestes-hand_n they_o promise_v also_o general_a indulgence_n to_o such_o as_o visit_v certain_a church_n at_o rome_n and_o else_o where_o which_o may_v be_v do_v with_o small_a labour_n now_o for_o venial_a sin_n they_o say_v that_o knock_v of_o the_o breast_n and_o holy_a water_n be_v remedy_n sufficient_a for_o such_o matter_n they_o say_v christian_n need_v not_o to_o repent_v they_o they_o hold_v also_o that_o holy_a water_n be_v good_a to_o drive_v away_o devil_n but_o in_o no_o place_n be_v there_o want_v of_o holy_a water_n if_o a_o man_n live_v all_o his_o life_n most_o lewd_o and_o loose_o yet_o if_o he_o confess_v to_o a_o priest_n when_o he_o lie_v a_o die_a and_o promise_v satisfaction_n he_o fail_v not_o to_o have_v absolution_n and_o if_o he_o satisfy_v not_o in_o this_o life_n yet_o they_o hold_v that_o either_o by_o mass_n or_o indulgence_n he_o may_v be_v deliver_v out_o of_o purgatory_n but_o indulgence_n be_v not_o dear_a and_o mass_n be_v dog_n cheap_a a_o trental_a be_v not_o value_v at_o 30._o penny_n nor_o whole_a fardel_n at_o great_a sum_n by_o every_o small_a good_a work_n nay_o by_o eat_a red-herring_n and_o saltfish_n on_o friday_n and_o such_o observance_n they_o hope_v to_o merit_v heaven_n so_o broad_a they_o make_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n and_o so_o easy_a a_o matter_n to_o come_v thither_o final_o as_o eunomius_n promise_v they_o that_o profess_v his_o faith_n reward_n in_o heaven_n howsoever_o they_o live_v so_o likewise_o do_v the_o papist_n promise_v heaven_n to_o their_o follower_n so_o they_o profess_v and_o set_v forward_o the_o pope_n cause_n whether_o they_o be_v murderer_n of_o king_n or_o massacrer_n or_o rebel_n or_o filthy_a whore-monger_n or_o sodomite_n it_o skill_v not_o the_o masspriest_n promise_v not_o only_o pardon_v but_o also_o reward_v in_o heaven_n so_o they_o die_v in_o the_o pope_n obedience_n and_o profess_v his_o religion_n this_o religion_n therefore_o that_o give_v such_o liberty_n to_o sinner_n and_o lead_v they_o such_o pleasant_a way_n feed_v the_o eye_n of_o people_n with_o sight_n their_o ear_n with_o pleasant_a sound_n and_o satisfy_v all_o their_o sense_n with_o carnal_a pleasure_n can_v be_v true_a we_o can_v also_o specify_v the_o same_o by_o infinite_a example_n and_o by_o particular_n show_v that_o papist_n run_v the_o broad_a way_n but_o that_o we_o reserve_v it_o to_o the_o next_o chapter_n chap._n xxx_o that_o popish_a religion_n bring_v forth_o such_o bitter_a fruit_n that_o the_o professor_n thereof_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o boast_v of_o their_o work_n good_a tree_n be_v know_v by_o their_o fruit_n let_v we_o then_o see_v what_o fruit_n have_v come_v of_o popery_n that_o we_o may_v know_v whether_o the_o tree_n be_v good_a or_o no_o from_o whence_o they_o have_v issue_v bristol_n in_o his_o 39_o motive_n imagine_v that_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v against_o his_o consort_n and_o therefore_o brag_v much_o of_o work_n and_o despise_v his_o adversary_n as_o run_v the_o broade-way_n to_o destruction_n but_o when_o his_o consort_n shall_v see_v our_o discourse_n concern_v the_o fruit_n &_o effect_n of_o popery_n and_o their_o strange_a &_o enormous_a wicked_a life_n they_o will_v wish_v that_o for_o this_o matter_n we_o have_v never_o be_v call_v in_o question_n first_o then_o we_o say_v that_o the_o papist_n err_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o work_n and_o next_o that_o their_o life_n be_v so_o disorderly_a as_o if_o they_o do_v only_o study_v to_o excel_v in_o all_o wickedness_n leudenesse_n and_o villainy_n christian_n believe_v that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o good_a life_n but_o they_o hold_v that_o not_o only_a god_n law_n but_o all_o scripture_n be_v imperfect_a and_o insufficient_a without_o tradition_n christian_n believe_v that_o the_o perfection_n of_o christian_a life_n consist_v in_o the_o gospel_n but_o these_o teach_v that_o the_o rule_n of_o benet_n francis_n dominicke_n and_o other_o monk_n and_o friar_n do_v direct_v we_o to_o a_o further_a perfection_n then_o be_v command_v in_o the_o gospel_n they_o do_v as_o well_o believe_v that_o the_o law_n of_o the_o pope_n do_v bind_v our_o conscience_n as_o god_n law_n and_o think_v that_o the_o work_v do_v according_a to_o the_o pope_n law_n do_v as_o well_o please_v god_n as_o the_o work_v command_v in_o god_n law_n they_o make_v more_o conscience_n to_o abstain_v from_o flesh_n on_o friday_n then_o to_o murder_v christian_n as_o their_o curiosity_n in_o keep_v that_o form_n of_o fast_o and_o their_o cruelty_n in_o murder_v and_o massacre_a christian_n do_v declare_v the_o masspriest_n give_v absolution_n to_o most_o heinous_a sinner_n and_o enjoin_v they_o penance_n afterward_o the_o pope_n grant_v indulgence_n to_o most_o horrible_a offender_n they_o believe_v not_o that_o concupiscence_n be_v sin_n or_o that_o it_o be_v better_a for_o votary_n to_o marry_v then_o to_o burn_v or_o that_o venial_a sin_n deserve_v the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n or_o eternal_a death_n they_o teach_v that_o every_o christian_n be_v to_o satisfy_v for_o the_o temporal_a pain_n due_a to_o sin_n and_o that_o either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v in_o purgatory_n they_o believe_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v justify_v by_o extreme_a unction_n and_o other_o popish_a sacrament_n and_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n they_o suppose_v that_o every_o man_n be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n perfect_o of_o which_o it_o follow_v that_o as_o the_o pelagian_o teach_v a_o man_n may_v live_v without_o sin_n final_o by_o their_o work_n they_o hope_v to_o merit_v eternal_a life_n which_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n rom._n 6._o who_o teach_v we_o that_o eternal_a life_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n if_o then_o the_o papist_n err_v so_o gross_o both_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o work_n and_o also_o in_o the_o rule_n of_o our_o work_n it_o be_v not_o like_a that_o their_o work_n be_v excellent_a nay_o we_o find_v by_o practice_n that_o their_o work_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n impious_a and_o displease_v unto_o god_n as_o for_o example_n the_o adoration_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o sacrament_n their_o blasphemous_a prayer_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n to_o angel_n and_o saint_n their_o sacrilegious_a take_n of_o the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n from_o god_n people_n their_o worship_n do_v to_o antichrist_n their_o perjury_n and_o rebellion_n against_o prince_n their_o murder_a god_n saint_n their_o maintain_n of_o public_a stew_n and_o bank_n of_o usury_n and_o such_o like_a the_o rest_n can_v much_o please_v god_n or_o man_n as_o for_o example_n the_o beg_n of_o vagabond_n friar_n the_o forswear_n of_o marriage_n the_o eat_n of_o muscle_n cockle_n and_o red_a herring_n in_o lent_n the_o take_n of_o ash_n on_o ash-wednesday_n the_o ring_n and_o sing_v for_o dead_a man_n the_o shave_n of_o priest_n crown_n the_o grease_n of_o sick_a man_n of_o altar_n bell_n and_o such_o like_a toy_n and_o ceremony_n
massacre_n and_o cruel_a execution_n do_v by_o the_o papist_n of_o late_a year_n upon_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n have_v proceed_v from_o no_o other_o fountain_n then_o from_o the_o malice_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o he_o be_v a_o murderer_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o apocalyps_n 12._o we_o read_v that_o the_o great_a red_a dragon_n that_o be_v the_o devil_n persecute_v the_o woman_n which_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o cause_v she_o to_o fly_v into_o the_o wilderness_n from_o the_o same_o fountain_n also_o do_v issue_n all_o the_o forgery_n lie_n and_o calumniation_n of_o papist_n whereby_o they_o have_v go_v about_o to_o suppress_v the_o truth_n for_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o father_n of_o lie_n and_o from_o their_o father_n the_o devil_n the_o lie_a friar_n and_o masspriest_n have_v learn_v their_o lie_a devise_n who_o then_o be_v of_o god_n must_v needs_o hate_v this_o religion_n that_o be_v partly_o invent_v and_o partly_o maintain_v by_o the_o devil_n chap._n xxxiii_o that_o papist_n can_v have_v no_o assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o religion_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n we_o be_v assure_v for_o the_o article_n thereof_o be_v deliver_v by_o christ_n teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o confess_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o all_o time_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o popery_n for_o neither_o do_v christ_n deliver_v it_o nor_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n teach_v it_o nor_o be_v the_o same_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o confess_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o all_o time_n but_o depend_v partly_o upon_o tradition_n not_o write_v and_o partly_o upon_o the_o pope_n determination_n and_o partly_o upon_o the_o opinion_n of_o schoolman_n and_o canoniste_n and_o the_o monk_n and_o friar_n now_o what_o assurance_n i_o pray_v you_o can_v any_o papist_n have_v of_o these_o doctrine_n first_o no_o man_n yet_o can_v ever_o tell_v what_o these_o tradition_n be_v which_o the_o priest_n of_o trent_n will_v make_v equal_a to_o scripture_n bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la talk_v at_o random_n but_o he_o dare_v not_o come_v to_o particular_n nor_o direct_o express_v they_o second_o they_o dare_v not_o define_v where_o these_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v find_v if_o they_o say_v in_o the_o decretales_fw-la then_o all_o future_a tradition_n be_v cut_v off_o and_o former_a tradition_n found_v on_o the_o pope_n opinion_n if_o they_o say_v in_o the_o legend_n their_o tradition_n will_v prove_v lie_n and_o foolery_n for_o such_o be_v the_o legend_n if_o they_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o pure_a fountain_n of_o tradition_n of_o caesar_n baronius_n as_o pope_n sixtus_n the_o five_o do_v they_o will_v be_v laugh_v at_o that_o be_v not_o advise_v of_o their_o ground_n before_o the_o time_n of_o this_o babble_n and_o confuse_a cardinal_n three_o they_o can_v show_v why_o some_o tradition_n shall_v be_v observe_v and_o other_o not_z but_o if_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v recein_v with_o equal_a affection_n to_o holy_a scripture_n than_o may_v none_o be_v abolish_v as_o for_o the_o determination_n of_o pope_n they_o can_v allege_v no_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v be_v true_a if_o they_o bring_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o peter_n they_o concern_v they_o nothing_o that_o be_v so_o unlike_a to_o peter_n if_o they_o bring_v christ_n promise_n to_o his_o church_n they_o concern_v they_o much_o less_o for_o they_o be_v rather_o enemy_n than_o member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o be_v they_o member_n yet_o what_o man_n be_v privilege_v so_o that_o he_o can_v err_v but_o those_o which_o for_o write_v of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v lead_v into_o all_o truth_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n final_o there_o be_v such_o contention_n betwixt_o the_o schoolman_n and_o canonist_n and_o such_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n among_o the_o several_a doctor_n of_o both_o the_o side_n that_o it_o be_v bar_v to_o say_v whether_o any_o of_o they_o teach_v true_o and_o most_o certain_a that_o many_o of_o they_o teach_v false_o nay_o scarce_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n be_v deliver_v by_o schoolman_n wherein_o they_o dissent_v not_o one_o from_o another_o now_o if_o they_o say_v their_o faith_n be_v found_v not_o only_o upon_o the_o pope_n determination_n and_o apostolic_a tradition_n but_o also_o upon_o holy_a scripture_n yet_o hold_v as_o they_o do_v this_o shall_v not_o any_o whit_n relieve_v they_o for_o first_o they_o can_v assure_v themselves_o that_o the_o latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v more_o true_a than_o the_o original_a text_n in_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a for_o all_o the_o father_n with_o one_o consent_n prefer_v the_o original_a fountain_n before_o all_o version_n second_o they_o must_v needs_o stand_v in_o doubt_n which_o be_v the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n for_o if_o they_o allow_v that_o which_o be_v set_v out_o by_o clement_n the_o 8._o then_o can_v they_o allow_v of_o that_o which_o be_v set_v out_o by_o sixtus_n quintus_n the_o one_o so_o much_o differ_v from_o the_o other_o nor_o if_o they_o approve_v this_o can_v they_o follow_v that_o three_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o scripture_n because_o god_n speak_v in_o they_o nor_o the_o tradition_n because_o they_o be_v god_n word_n as_o they_o hold_v but_o because_o the_o church_n do_v tell_v we_o which_o be_v canonical_a scripture_n and_o consign_v they_o unto_o we_o and_o do_v further_a deliver_v unto_o we_o these_o tradition_n not_o write_v for_o this_o be_v stapletons_n opinion_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr doctrinalibus_fw-la princip_n and_o authorit_n ecclesiast_fw-la defence_n and_o be_v confess_v of_o most_o papist_n but_o if_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n in_o respect_n of_o we_o do_v so_o depend_v upon_o the_o church_n that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v assure_v of_o either_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n then_o do_v the_o faith_n of_o papist_n rest_v upon_o the_o pope_n who_o as_o they_o say_v be_v chief_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o will_v bring_v the_o papist_n to_o great_a uncertainty_n for_o who_o be_v so_o mad_a as_o to_o believe_v that_o a_o blind_a pope_n can_v well_o judge_v of_o colour_n or_o so_o senseless_a as_o not_o to_o believe_v god_n word_n without_o the_o pope_n warrant_n four_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n because_o they_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n but_o because_o they_o be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o pope_n thomas_n aquinas_n 2.2.9.1_o art_n 10._o say_v that_o the_o order_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n &_o that_o athanasius_n his_o creed_n be_v receive_v because_o it_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o this_o by_o other_o be_v deliver_v in_o more_o gross_a term_n stapleton_n in_o his_o doctrinal_a principle_n say_v that_o the_o last_o resolution_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v in_o the_o pope_n desinitive_a sentence_n and_o bellarmine_n lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 4._o go_v about_o to_o show_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o supreme_a judge_n to_o who_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o last_o resolution_n of_o all_o controversy_n of_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v but_o the_o papist_n can_v neither_o assure_v thomselue_n that_o he_o that_o sit_v at_o rome_n be_v true_a pope_n and_o s._n peter_n true_a successor_n nor_o that_o his_o determination_n be_v certain_a or_o true_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v s._n peter_n true_a successor_n it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o prove_v consider_v that_o he_o preach_v not_o as_o s._n peter_n do_v nor_o s._n peter_n wear_v a_o triple_a crown_n and_o command_v temporal_a prince_n as_o he_o do_v it_o be_v very_o hard_o also_o to_o know_v whether_o he_o be_v true_a pope_n or_o no_o after_o the_o common_a understanding_n of_o papist_n for_o unless_o he_o be_v baptize_v and_o true_o order_v and_o choose_v he_o be_v no_o true_a pope_n but_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o know_v whether_o he_o be_v baptize_v which_o depend_v upon_o the_o priest_n intention_n which_o be_v uncerteine_a and_o hide_a it_o be_v also_o more_o hard_a to_o understand_v whether_o he_o be_v true_o order_v or_o not_o for_o if_o he_o be_v not_o baptize_v then_o be_v he_o not_o capable_a of_o priesthood_n as_o innocentius_n say_v c._n ventens_fw-fr de_fw-fr presbytero_fw-la non_fw-la baptizato_fw-la and_o if_o he_o that_o order_v he_o have_v no_o intention_n to_o do_v it_o than_o receive_v he_o no_o order_n last_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n most_o difficult_a to_o know_v whether_o the_o pope_n be_v right_o choose_v or_o else_o by_o simony_n or_o violence_n or_o other_o mean_v intrude_v so_o it_o be_v always_o most_o
rest_n also_o may_v revoke_v their_o error_n see_v their_o deformity_n return_v with_o a_o sincere_a heart_n to_o god_n true_a church_n and_o so_o be_v save_v chap._n lv._o a_o brief_a recapitulation_n of_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n and_o a_o exhortation_n both_o to_o papist_n and_o true_a christian_n thus_o we_o see_v and_o i_o pray_v god_n all_o christian_n may_v diligent_o consider_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o popish_a religion_n brief_o it_o be_v a_o collection_n of_o diverse_a corruption_n and_o error_n maintain_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n either_o contrary_a or_o above_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n this_o religion_n we_o have_v show_v to_o have_v be_v build_v upon_o weak_a uncerteine_a and_o false_a foundation_n and_o aver_v that_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n law_n and_o of_o true_a faith_n and_o justification_n through_o christ_n the_o same_o also_o teach_v erroneous_o of_o the_o gospel_n and_o diminish_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n our_o mediator_n and_o redeemer_n further_o it_o have_v corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o bring_v in_o many_o old_a and_o new_a heresy_n it_o be_v compact_v of_o diverse_a impiety_n blasphemy_n and_o idolatry_n and_o never_o come_v from_o jerusalem_n it_o be_v never_o teach_v by_o the_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n nor_o profess_v by_o ancient_a christian_a king_n it_o be_v not_o that_o religion_n to_o which_o the_o ancient_a britan_n and_o english_a be_v convert_v nor_o do_v it_o deserve_v to_o be_v call_v catholic_a or_o ancient_a it_o be_v find_v to_o be_v repugnant_a to_o ancient_a counsel_n and_o to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n it_o be_v a_o religion_n diverse_a from_o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a martyr_n of_o christ_n jesus_n a_o religion_n devise_v by_o man_n and_o not_o derive_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n a_o religion_n who_o founder_n &_o defender_n do_v wicked_o wrest_v and_o abuse_v scriprure_n father_n and_o other_o writer_n a_o religion_n consist_v of_o heathenish_a and_o jewish_a observance_n a_o religion_n full_a of_o contradiction_n and_o contrariety_n a_o religion_n stein_v with_o many_o foolery_n and_o absurdity_n a_o religion_n keep_v christian_n in_o ignorance_n of_o true_a piety_n and_o lose_v the_o reins_n to_o all_o voluptuousness_n and_o disorder_n a_o religion_n devoid_a of_o good_a work_n and_o piety_n a_o religion_n that_o make_v a_o base_a account_n of_o god_n people_n and_o teach_v doctrine_n of_o devil_n a_o religion_n of_o who_o ground_n and_o doctrine_n the_o professor_n thereof_o have_v no_o assurance_n a_o religion_n repugnant_a to_o law_n of_o nation_n of_o kindred_n alliance_n and_o common_a civility_n a_o religion_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o king_n and_o dangerous_a in_o regard_n of_o their_o state_n and_o person_n a_o religion_n that_o lay_v grievous_a burden_n on_o man_n conscience_n and_o eat_v up_o christian_n through_o manifold_a exaction_n a_o religion_n without_o true_a bishop_n and_o priest_n and_o whole_o maintain_v by_o false_a allegation_n forgery_n calumniation_n lie_n fire_n and_o sword_n perjury_n and_o breach_n of_o covenant_n a_o religion_n who_o chief_a founder_n and_o maintainer_n have_v be_v common_o note_v for_o wicked_a and_o profane_a man_n a_o religion_n more_o absurd_a in_o diverse_a point_n and_o that_o oppress_v christian_n more_o greevous_o than_o mahometry_n a_o religion_n by_o who_o practice_n the_o empire_n of_o christian_n be_v decay_v &_o the_o power_n of_o the_o turk_n enlarge_v a_o religion_n profess_v by_o degenerate_v roman_n neither_o for_o faith_n nor_o life_n comparable_a to_o their_o ancestor_n and_o by_o a_o church_n that_o be_v never_o visible_a until_o of_o late_a time_n nor_o can_v show_v better_a mark_n or_o bring_v better_a motive_n to_o induce_v man_n to_o embrace_v her_o doctrine_n than_o the_o turk_n and_o paynim_n to_o conclude_v a_o religion_n who_o professor_n can_v neither_o be_v esteem_v true_a subject_n nor_o true_a christian_n nor_o justly_o pretend_v either_o assurance_n or_o hope_v of_o their_o salvation_n i_o do_v therefore_o exhort_v all_o true_a christian_n as_o they_o desire_v either_o that_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n jesus_n may_v be_v public_o receive_v or_o that_o doctrine_n contrary_a to_o piety_n christian_a charity_n policy_n reason_n and_o common_a humanity_n may_v be_v suppress_v to_o beware_v of_o the_o levain_n of_o popery_n &_o to_o concur_v with_o those_o which_o both_o teach_v and_o set_v forward_o the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o which_o seek_v to_o resist_v all_o corruption_n false_a doctrine_n sect_n and_o heresy_n and_o to_o root_v up_o the_o seed_n of_o all_o treachery_n and_o rebellion_n on_o the_o other_o side_n i_o beseech_v all_o papist_n to_o cast_v away_o all_o prejudice_n and_o passion_n and_o diligent_o to_o consider_v of_o the_o premise_n that_o as_o they_o profess_v themselves_o true_a subject_n &_o well_o affect_v to_o catholic_a &_o the_o ancient_a religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n so_o they_o may_v abhor_v their_o former_a treason_n and_o rebellious_a detest_v the_o masspriest_n and_o powder-man_n their_o consort_n reject_v all_o heresy_n error_n and_o false_a doctrine_n mask_v with_o glorious_a title_n of_o universality_n and_o antiquity_n and_o set_v forth_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n teach_v a_o late_a particular_a faith_n and_o final_o endeavour_n to_o be_v gather_v together_o into_o that_o society_n whereof_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n and_o without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n the_o god_n of_o all_o truth_n confirm_v and_o establish_v all_o true_a christian_n in_o truth_n and_o discover_v all_o treachery_n and_o error_n that_o such_o as_o now_o be_v disloial_o mind_v and_o wander_v astray_o may_v acknowledge_v their_o former_a disloialty_n and_o error_n and_o embrace_v the_o true_a catholic_a faith_n and_o that_o such_o as_o stand_v may_v be_v confirm_v in_o the_o truth_n that_o so_o both_o they_o and_o we_o joint_o may_v live_v loyal_o under_o our_o prince_n and_o true_o serve_v one_o true_a and_o everliving_a god_n and_o glorify_v his_o holy_a name_n through_o christ_n our_o lord_n to_o who_o together_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n three_o person_n and_o one_o god_n we_o render_v all_o praise_n and_o honour_n now_o and_o for_o ever_o a_o brief_a note_n of_o the_o content_n of_o every_o chapter_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n chap._n 1._o what_o be_v mean_v by_o popery_n or_o popish_a religion_n in_o this_o whole_a treatise_n chap._n 2._o of_o the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o popish_a religion_n chap._n 3._o of_o the_o wicked_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o performance_n thereof_o chap._n 4._o of_o the_o damnable_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v faith_n and_o justification_n chap._n 5._o what_o papist_n do_v mean_a speak_v of_o the_o gospel_n chap._n 6._o of_o the_o impious_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n concern_v christ_n our_o saviour_n chap._n 7._o the_o strange_a contradictory_n and_o false_a opinion_n of_o papist_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n chap._n 8._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o mixture_n of_o old_a and_o new_a heresy_n chap._n 9_o a_o catalogue_n of_o diverse_a notorious_a impiety_n and_o blasphemy_n contain_v not_o only_o in_o popish_a book_n but_o also_o in_o the_o corpse_n of_o popish_a religion_n chap._n 10._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o sink_n of_o heathenish_a idolatry_n chap._n 11._o that_o popish_a religion_n never_o come_v from_o jerusalem_n chap._n 12._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v never_o teach_v either_o by_o the_o old_a prophet_n or_o by_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n jesus_n chap._n 13._o that_o popery_n be_v either_o condemn_v or_o not_o know_v ●s_a by_o king_n profess_v christian_n religion_n in_o old_a time_n chap._n 14._o that_o the_o ancient_a britane_n and_o english_a be_v not_o first_o convert_v to_o popish_a religion_n chap._n 15._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v most_o false_o term_v catholic_a religion_n and_o papist_n catholic_n chap._n 16._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v not_o the_o ancient_a religion_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n chap._n 17._o that_o popery_n be_v repugnant_a to_o ancient_a counsel_n chap._n 18._o that_o popery_n be_v not_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n chap._n 19_o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v never_o testify_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christian_a martyr_n chap._n 20._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o mere_a humane_a device_n and_o not_o in_o any_o sort_n to_o be_v deduce_v or_o prove_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n 21._o that_o popish_a religion_n in_o diverse_a point_n be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n 22._o that_o the_o founder_n and_o desender_v of_o popery_n do_v most_o wicked_o abuse_v holy_a scripture_n chap._n 23._o that_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o principal_a proctor_n of_o his_o cause_n be_v great_a forger_n and_o falsifier_n of_o father_n profane_a writer_n and_o of_o public_a record_n chap._n 24._o that_o popery_n stand_v much_o upon_o heathenish_a observance_n and_o custom_n chap._n 25._o that_o popery_n borrow_v also_o diverse_a fashion_n from_o the_o jew_n chap._n 26._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v full_a of_o contradiction_n and_o contrary_a opinion_n chap._n 27._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o most_o absurd_a and_o foolish_a religion_n chap._n 28._o that_o popery_n keep_v christian_n in_o blindness_n and_o ignorance_n of_o god_n and_o godliness_n chap._n 29._o that_o popish_a religion_n give_v the_o reins_n to_o licentiousness_n of_o life_n &_o lead_v christian_n the_o broad_a way_n to_o destruction_n chap._n 30._o that_o popish_a religion_n bring_v forth_o such_o bitter_a fruit_n that_o the_o professor_n thereof_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o boast_v of_o their_o work_n chap._n 31._o that_o in_o popery_n a_o base_a account_n be_v make_v of_o prince_n and_o all_o lay-man_n chap._n 32._o that_o popery_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n chap._n 33._o that_o papist_n can_v have_v no_o assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o religion_n chap._n 34._o that_o popery_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n chap._n 35._o that_o popery_n dissolve_v the_o bond_n of_o kindred_n all_o 〈◊〉_d and_o civility_n chap._n 36._o that_o popish_a religion_n either_o disannul_v or_o great_o preiudice_v the_o authority_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n chap._n 37._o that_o king_n profess_v popish_a religion_n be_v either_o no_o king_n or_o but_o half_a king_n chap._n 38._o that_o king_n live_v not_o in_o any_o security_n of_o their_o line_n where_o popery_n be_v profess_v by_o their_o subject_n chap._n 39_o that_o popish_a religion_n lay_v grievous_a burden_n on_o man_n conscience_n chap._n 40._o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v very_o grievous_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o masspriest_n manfolde_v tax_n and_o exaction_n chap._n 41._o that_o the_o popish_a church_n have_v no_o true_a bishop_n nor_o priest_n chap._n 42._o that_o popery_n can_v be_v maintain_v without_o forgery_n and_o falsehood_n chap._n 43._o that_o popery_n can_v be_v well_o uphold_v without_o calummation_n and_o lie_n chap._n 44._o that_o the_o cause_n of_o popery_n be_v not_o maintain_v without_o fire_n and_o sword_n chap._n 45._o that_o the_o practice_n and_o treaty_n of_o pope_n and_o their_o complice_n with_o christian_n be_v not_o to_o be_v trust_v chap._n 46._o that_o the_o chief_a founder_n and_o maintainer_n of_o popery_n have_v be_v common_o note_v for_o wicked_a and_o profane_a man_n chap._n 47._o that_o popery_n in_o many_o point_n be_v more_o absurd_a and_o abominable_a than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o mahomet_n chap._n 48._o that_o christian_n be_v less_o oppress_v under_o the_o turk_n then_o under_o the_o pope_n chap._n 49._o that_o the_o ambition_n covetousness_n contention_n &_o practice_n of_o pope_n be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o the_o decay_n of_o the_o christian_a empire_n and_o a_o great_a occasion_n of_o the_o good_a success_n of_o the_o turk_n chap._n 50._o that_o the_o modern_n church_n of_o rome_n be_v much_o degenerate_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o ancient_a roman_n chap._n 51._o that_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o now_o be_v be_v invisible_a in_o old_a time_n chap._n 52._o that_o the_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n and_o motive_n to_o the_o modern_a romish_a faith_n allege_v by_o papist_n may_v as_o well_o be_v alle_fw-mi dge_v by_o turk_n and_o infidel_n chap._n 53._o that_o true_a papist_n can_v be_v true_a nor_o loyal_a subject_n chap._n 54._o that_o such_o papist_n as_o positive_o hold_v all_o the_o heretical_a and_o false_a doctrine_n of_o the_o mederne_a church_n of_o rome_n can_v possible_o be_v save_v chap._n 55._o a_o brief_a recapitulation_n of_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n and_o be_v exhortation_n both_o to_o papist_n and_o true_a christian_n
survey_v of_o popery_n and_o to_o draw_v home_o this_o idle_a wander_a surveyor_n &_o searcher_n of_o other_o man_n matter_n to_o a_o careful_a consideration_n of_o his_o own_o desperate_a cause_n his_o treatise_n be_v most_o foolish_o title_v a_o survey_v of_o the_o new_a religion_n for_o neither_o shall_v he_o ever_o prove_v that_o one_o article_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v new_a nor_o do_v he_o dispute_v against_o any_o ground_n hold_v by_o we_o but_o only_o tell_v of_o certain_a extravagant_a speech_n partly_o false_o impute_v to_o luther_n caluin_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o other_o private_a man_n and_o partly_o false_o gather_v out_o of_o their_o word_n by_o false_a construction_n but_o have_v they_o hold_v any_o private_a opinion_n that_o just_o may_v be_v censure_v what_o be_v that_o to_o we_o our_o religion_n certes_o be_v not_o ground_v upon_o luther_n caluin_n or_o any_o late_a teacher_n but_o upon_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n neither_o be_v our_o faith_n that_o which_o be_v find_v in_o private_a man_n writing_n but_o that_o which_o be_v found_v upon_o holy_a scripture_n and_o contain_v in_o our_o public_a confession_n he_o may_v therefore_o with_o more_o reason_n have_v call_v it_o a_o surfeit_n of_o his_o own_o foolery_n and_o fantastical_a device_n and_o calumniation_n than_o a_o survey_n of_o our_o religion_n against_o this_o idle_a invention_n of_o kellison_n i_o have_v i_o hope_v oppose_v a_o more_o diligent_a and_o certain_a survey_n of_o popery_n for_o i_o have_v not_o devise_v any_o thing_n of_o my_o own_o but_o true_o report_v the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o teach_v and_o herein_o i_o do_v not_o object_v whatsoever_o be_v teach_v by_o scotus_n aquinas_n durandus_fw-la biel_n stapleton_n harding_n bellarmine_n or_o which_o other_o doctor_n do_v hold_v singuler_o nor_o that_o which_o sanders_n parson_n or_o such_o idle_a fellow_n babble_n in_o their_o trifle_a book_n but_o only_o that_o which_o be_v either_o define_v in_o some_o council_n or_o determine_v by_o some_o pope_n or_o general_o teach_v or_o practise_v by_o all_o or_o most_o or_o best_a of_o our_o adversary_n and_o which_o i_o think_v kellison_n will_v not_o deny_v and_o by_o these_o ground_n doctrine_n and_o practice_n i_o hope_v to_o overthrow_v the_o whole_a frame_n and_o build_n of_o popery_n be_v lay_v upon_o weak_a ground_n and_o consist_v of_o many_o wicked_a and_o false_a doctrine_n and_o be_v maintain_v by_o most_o lewd_a and_o wicked_a mean_n and_o practice_n this_o discourse_n i_o first_o devise_v for_o a_o private_a friend_n who_o waver_v for_o i_o will_v not_o say_v defection_n until_o i_o see_v surther_n i_o do_v much_o lament_v and_o who_o settlement_n i_o do_v much_o desire_n but_o because_o i_o do_v think_v the_o same_o may_v do_v good_a to_o many_o who_o not_o know_v the_o truth_n we_o hold_v nor_o the_o error_n heresy_n superstition_n idolatry_n and_o impiety_n of_o popery_n do_v run_v headlong_o upon_o occasion_n either_o of_o malcontentment_n or_o desire_v of_o innovation_n in_o matter_n of_o state_n which_o they_o consider_v may_v soon_o be_v stir_v by_o quarrel_n about_o religion_n into_o strange_a course_n i_o have_v be_v persuade_v to_o make_v it_o common_a the_o same_o also_o may_v serve_v to_o reclaim_v the_o most_o haggard_a papist_n if_o they_o do_v not_o wilful_o shut_v their_o eye_n and_o stop_v their_o ear_n against_o the_o truth_n three_o this_o may_v serve_v to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o slanderous_a jebusite_n and_o masspriest_n that_o impute_v to_o we_o wicked_a opinion_n and_o practice_n no_o way_n defend_v be_v unable_a to_o defend_v their_o own_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n which_o they_o public_o profess_v and_o commend_v sinal_o i_o hope_v wise_a christian_n may_v learn_v by_o these_o collection_n of_o we_o neither_o to_o trust_v the_o adversary_n who_o make_v no_o conscience_n of_o lie_v or_o slander_v nor_o to_o condemn_v innocent_a man_n before_o they_o be_v hear_v and_o convict_v vouchsafe_v therefore_o gentle_a reader_n to_o read_v our_o discourse_n with_o attention_n and_o to_o judge_v without_o partiality_n and_o then_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o thou_o will_v beware_v both_o of_o the_o impious_a doctrine_n and_o of_o the_o injurious_a and_o lewd_a practice_n of_o popery_n if_o any_o be_v offend_v with_o this_o survey_a course_n let_v he_o impute_v the_o fault_n to_o kellison_n who_o of_o a_o drunken_a butler_n be_v now_o become_v a_o mad_a surveyor_n and_o if_o he_o find_v not_o text_n or_o proof_n sufficient_a to_o satisfy_v his_o humour_n in_o proof_n of_o every_o allegation_n in_o this_o treatise_n let_v he_o think_v that_o the_o matter_n be_v of_o that_o nature_n that_o either_o they_o will_v be_v confess_v of_o the_o adversary_n or_o else_o be_v notorious_o know_v to_o the_o world_n though_o impudent_o deny_v by_o the_o polshorne_a pack_n of_o antichrist_n final_o as_o there_o be_v but_o one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o true_a religion_n which_o every_o one_o be_v to_o know_v and_o to_o embrace_v if_o he_o will_v be_v save_v and_o this_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n but_o as_o athanasius_n orat_fw-la 2_o contr_n arianos_n say_v of_o the_o arian_n pro_fw-la christo_fw-la apud_fw-la illos_fw-la arius_n est_fw-la that_o be_v they_o follow_v arius_n as_o if_o he_o be_v christ_n so_o we_o may_v say_v of_o the_o papist_n the_o pope_n be_v their_o christ_n their_o head_n their_o lodestarre_n their_o northpole_n and_o all_o in_o all_o this_o one_o true_a religion_n be_v also_o apostolic_a and_o catholic_a and_o most_o ancient_a tertullian_n lib._n 1._o contr_n marcionem_fw-la teach_v we_o whatsoever_o doctrine_n have_v be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n after_o the_o first_o publication_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v repute_v heresy_n haeresis_fw-la deputabitur_fw-la say_v he_o quod_fw-la postea_fw-la inducitur_fw-la but_o popery_n never_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n but_o from_o the_o pope_n neither_o be_v the_o same_o universal_o or_o ancient_o receive_v but_o only_o teach_v and_o embrace_v by_o the_o pope_n faction_n of_o late_a time_n and_o within_o certain_a limit_n final_o this_o true_a and_o apostolic_a religion_n be_v of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o the_o invention_n of_o pope_n or_o their_o polshorne_a priest_n monk_n or_o friar_n embrace_v therefore_o that_o religion_n that_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n that_o be_v true_o catholic_a apostolic_a and_o most_o ancient_a and_o final_o which_o have_v no_o author_n but_o god_n and_o beware_v of_o all_o profane_a novelty_n and_o popish_a invention_n and_o then_o as_o thou_o walk_v by_o faith_n in_o this_o life_n so_o thou_o shall_v attain_v to_o the_o vision_n of_o the_o face_n of_o god_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v and_o also_o reign_v with_o god_n everlasting_o through_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o life_n the_o abridgement_n or_o survey_v of_o popery_n contain_v a_o brief_a and_o plain_a declaration_n of_o the_o ground_n doctrine_n beginning_n proceed_n impiety_n falsity_n and_o other_o manifold_a abuse_n of_o the_o popish_a sect_n chap._n i._n what_o be_v mean_v by_o popery_n or_o popish_a religion_n in_o this_o discourse_n ensue_v to_o teach_v aright_o say_v plato_n in_o cratylo_n we_o be_v diligent_o to_o expound_v the_o term_n or_o word_n we_o treat_v of_o and_o tully_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o office_n say_v that_o every_o instruction_n that_o be_v undertake_v right_o aught_o to_o begin_v with_o a_o desinition_n of_o matter_n which_o we_o be_v to_o discourse_v of_o because_o therefore_o i_o will_v not_o be_v mistake_v nor_o have_v our_o adversary_n to_o take_v either_o a_o occasion_n of_o quarrel_n or_o a_o pretence_n of_o evasion_n it_o shall_v be_v neeedfull_a before_o we_o pass_v any_o further_a to_o define_v and_o declare_v what_o we_o mean_v in_o this_o discourse_n by_o popery_n or_o popish_a religion_n and_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o the_o papist_n do_v hold_v and_o profess_v the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o diverse_a other_o point_n deduce_v of_o they_o or_o consonant_n unto_o they_o which_o both_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n and_o we_o also_o believe_v and_o profess_v and_o under_o colour_n whereof_o they_o abuse_v simple_a soul_n recesue_v their_o puddle_n water_n of_o popery_n make_v sweet_a with_o some_o truth_n for_o the_o pure_a stream_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n by_o popery_n therefore_o we_o understand_v not_o any_o point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n general_o hold_v of_o all_o christian_n or_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n or_o holy_a apostle_n profess_v general_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o true_o term_v catholic_a for_o that_o we_o hold_v and_o profess_v as_o well_o as_o the_o papist_n and_o far_o more_o
foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n they_o do_v make_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o write_v equal_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o upon_o they_o nay_o upon_o the_o decretales_fw-la of_o pope_n and_o practice_v of_o masseprieste_n do_v build_v their_o faith_n all_o antiquity_n esteem_v holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o canon_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o therefore_o call_v they_o canonical_a but_o the_o romanist_n esteem_v they_o to_o be_v a_o unperfect_a canon_n without_o their_o tradition_n and_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la and_o determination_n bellarmine_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 4._o say_v they_o be_v neither_o necessary_a nor_o sufficient_a without_o tradition_n the_o father_n never_o account_v the_o book_n of_o tobiah_n judith_n ecclesiasticus_fw-la wisdom_n and_o the_o maccabee_n equal_a to_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n extant_a original_o in_o hebrew_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o hierome_n in_o prologo_fw-la galeato_fw-la of_o athanasius_n in_o synopsi_fw-la of_o nazianzen_n in_o carm_n of_o epiphanius_n and_o diverse_a other_o old_a and_o new_a writer_n the_o papist_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o trent_n decree_v they_o to_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o rest_n the_o ancient_a catholic_n ever_o esteem_v the_o hebrew_n text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o greek_a of_o the_o new_a to_o be_v more_o authentical_a than_o any_o translation_n the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n have_v make_v the_o old_a latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n authentical_a and_o do_v not_o give_v that_o honour_n to_o the_o original_a book_n of_o the_o bible_n the_o canonical_a scripture_n we_o say_v receive_v their_o force_n from_o the_o author_n of_o they_o and_o this_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n and_o by_o argument_n from_o scripture_n law_n and_o reason_n they_o say_v that_o scripture_n receive_v force_n and_o authority_n in_o respect_n of_o we_o from_o the_o church_n or_o rather_o from_o the_o pope_n papist_n be_v neither_o willing_a that_o scripture_n be_v turn_v into_o vulgar_a tongue_n nor_o will_v permit_v they_o to_o be_v read_v of_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n without_o licence_n or_o public_o read_v in_o vulgar_a tongue_n in_o the_o church_n final_o they_o say_v they_o be_v obscure_a and_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v and_o speak_v what_o they_o can_v in_o their_o disgrace_n second_o they_o teach_v erroneous_o concern_v christ_n natural_a body_n and_o concern_v his_o office_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n they_o believe_v to_o be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n on_o every_o altar_n at_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o time_n they_o also_o hold_v that_o his_o body_n be_v real_o under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n give_v he_o a_o body_n neither_o visible_a nor_o palpable_a nor_o in_o any_o sort_n like_a to_o we_o they_o teach_v further_o that_o his_o body_n be_v in_o diverse_a place_n where_o it_o fill_v not_o the_o place_n and_o that_o his_o one_o body_n have_v relation_n to_o diverse_a place_n they_o believe_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a before_o christ_n come_n be_v in_o hell_n or_o at_o least_o in_o limbo_n which_o be_v a_o part_n of_o hell_n and_o be_v thence_o deliver_v by_o christ_n go_v to_o hell_n as_o if_o his_o cross_n have_v wrought_v nothing_o for_o they_o they_o teach_v that_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v omniscient_a and_o per_fw-la consequent_a omnipotent_a and_o that_o he_o be_v vir_fw-la perfectus_fw-la that_o be_v a_o perfect_a or_o grow_v man_n from_o the_o first_o instant_n of_o his_o conception_n his_o office_n of_o mediation_n they_o give_v to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n to_o angel_n and_o to_o saint_n they_o make_v also_o saint_n our_o redeemer_n teach_v that_o by_o their_o merit_n christian_n obtain_v their_o desire_n and_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o purgatory_n to_o masspriest_n they_o give_v priesthood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o say_v that_o they_o offer_v up_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n real_o for_o quick_a and_o dead_a final_o they_o make_v the_o pope_n head_n spouse_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v they_o teach_v more_o catholikely_a of_o christ_n mystical_a body_n then_o of_o his_o natural_a body_n for_o they_o subject_v the_o same_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o exclude_v all_o from_o christ_n that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n the_o true_a member_n thereof_o they_o persecute_v and_o make_v heretic_n and_o reprobate_n and_o such_o as_o live_v without_o order_n or_o law_n profess_v their_o religion_n outward_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n body_n the_o church_n say_v they_o be_v always_o so_o conspicuous_a and_o visible_a that_o every_o one_o may_v see_v it_o and_o discern_v it_o the_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v true_a doctrine_n and_o the_o sincere_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n they_o deny_v assign_v most_o common_a and_o uncerteine_a mark_n as_o unity_n universality_n antiquity_n succession_n and_o such_o like_a the_o pope_n they_o make_v a_o most_o certain_a and_o infallible_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n and_o judge_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n they_o give_v he_o authority_n to_o make_v law_n for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o power_n to_o bind_v man_n conscience_n they_o make_v he_o more_o sovereign_a than_o a_o general_a council_n and_o say_v that_o his_o power_n in_o give_v indulgence_n reach_v into_o purgatory_n they_o say_v he_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v and_o depose_v king_n and_o to_o give_v away_o their_o kingdom_n to_o other_o betwixt_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o roman_a church_n they_o make_v no_o difference_n equal_v a_o part_n to_o the_o whole_a they_o say_v also_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v neither_o err_v nor_o fail_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n consist_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n but_o they_o place_v the_o same_o in_o certain_a external_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o in_o mere_a humane_a invention_n and_o device_n nay_o for_o god_n they_o worship_v creature_n not_o only_o give_v divine_a honour_n to_o the_o sacrament_n but_o also_o to_o crucifix_n and_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n make_v of_o wood_n stone_n and_o colour_n they_o do_v also_o adore_v not_o only_a saint_n but_o rot_a bone_n and_o rag_n they_o know_v not_o of_o who_o to_o saint_n they_o pray_v they_o make_v vow_n they_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o saint_n they_o erect_v church_n and_o altar_n to_o their_o image_n they_o burn_v incense_n and_o present_v diverse_a oblation_n and_o final_o in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n have_v devise_v particular_a mass_n and_o office_n transform_v the_o psalm_n and_o word_n of_o scripture_n to_o angel_n and_o saint_n their_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n be_v most_o exorbitant_a for_o they_o do_v not_o only_o add_v unto_o water_n in_o baptism_n salt_n spittle_n oil_n and_o diverse_a other_o ceremony_n partly_o idle_a partly_o superstitious_a but_o also_o unto_o the_o two_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o christ_n they_o equal_a confirmation_n matrimony_n penance_n order_n and_o extreme_a unction_n make_v they_o sacrament_n as_o well_o as_o baptism_n or_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o confirmation_n they_o have_v devise_v both_o a_o new_a sign_n and_o new_a word_n in_o extreme_a unction_n they_o have_v devise_v new_a form_n in_o the_o order_n of_o priest_n they_o say_v accipe_fw-la potestatem_fw-la offerendi_fw-la sacrisicium_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la pro_fw-la vivis_fw-la &_o mortuis_fw-la that_o be_v receive_v power_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n for_o quick_a and_o dead_a in_o penance_n they_o urge_v a_o necessity_n of_o confession_n strange_a form_n of_o whip_v and_o uncerteine_a hope_n and_o new_a device_n of_o satisfaction_n from_o matrimony_n they_o exclude_v priest_n monk_n and_o friar_n and_o make_v it_o a_o sacrament_n albeit_o they_o know_v neither_o certain_a sign_n nor_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o it_o but_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n they_o have_v quite_o abolish_v for_o that_o which_o christ_n ordain_v to_o be_v receive_v of_o the_o communicant_n that_o the_o masse-priest_n do_v offer_v for_o quick_a &_o dead_a and_o in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n of_o which_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n speak_v in_o the_o institution_n our_o saviour_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n institute_v his_o last_o supper_n these_o neither_o leave_n bread_n nor_o wine_n but_o make_v christian_n eater_n of_o man_n flesh_n and_o drinker_n of_o man_n blood_n like_o the_o cannibal_n &_o cyclopes_n christ_n ordain_v this_o sacrament_n in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n these_o make_v of_o the_o same_o a_o sacrifice_n in_o honour_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n they_o take_v from_o christian_n abrogate_a as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v the_o new_a testament_n establish_v in_o christ_n blood_n and_o
we_o shall_v have_v further_a occasion_n to_o speak_v hereafter_o second_o see_v the_o papist_n be_v not_o certain_a of_o their_o ground_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o religion_n of_o papist_n be_v most_o uncertain_a that_o they_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o their_o ground_n diverse_a argument_n declare_v for_o neither_o be_v they_o certain_a whether_o clement_n leo_n or_o any_o other_o sit_v in_o the_o pope_n chair_n be_v true_a pope_n nor_o can_v they_o assure_v themselves_o whether_o the_o decretales_fw-la which_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o pope_n be_v indeed_o their_o decretales_fw-la who_o name_n they_o carry_v antonius_n contius_n a_o learned_a papist_n in_o a_o certain_a annotation_n of_o his_o add_v to_o the_o ch_n sancta_fw-la do_v 15._o in_o plantin_n edition_n say_v that_o all_o the_o decretales_fw-la set_v out_o under_o name_n of_o pope_n before_o silvester_n be_v false_a and_o this_o he_o say_v he_o have_v show_v manifest_o further_o it_o can_v be_v pron_v that_o all_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v right_a and_o equal_a nay_o contrary_a we_o have_v by_o diverse_a most_o certain_a demonstration_n prove_v that_o both_o concern_v scripture_n faith_n the_o law_n sacrament_n prayer_n the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o diverse_a point_n of_o faith_n they_o have_v determine_v contrary_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o say_v as_o shall_v hereafter_o more_o particular_o appear_v three_o it_o be_v plain_a impudency_n to_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n institute_v the_o consecration_n of_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n the_o form_n of_o hallow_v of_o church_n salt_n water_n and_o all_o popish_a trinket_n the_o form_n of_o pray_v upon_o bead_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o romish_a tradition_n neither_o shall_v kellison_n ever_o be_v able_a to_o justify_v all_o those_o report_n which_o his_o teacher_n have_v receive_v by_o tradition_n and_o public_o heretofore_o set_v forth_o and_o now_o read_v out_o of_o their_o legend_n four_o diverse_a of_o those_o 84._o canon_n which_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v disclaim_v by_o the_o papist_n themselves_o and_o the_o rest_n can_v be_v prove_v that_o they_o be_v make_v by_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n the_o papist_n themselves_o have_v no_o certainty_n most_o confess_v 20._o as_o ruffian_n and_o pope_n stephen_n &_o other_o in_o c._n vigint_n do_v 16._o gratian_n under_o the_o testimony_n of_o athanasius_n tell_v we_o of_o 70._o c._n septuaginta_fw-la do_v 16._o now_o one_o alphonsus_n a_o pisa_fw-la a_o jebusite_n have_v publish_v 80._o canon_n the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n suppose_v to_o be_v hold_v under_o silvester_n bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v all_o counterfeit_a as_o the_o barbarous_a stile_n and_o strange_a form_n of_o government_n represent_v in_o those_o act_n and_o diverse_a barbarous_a name_n and_o other_o argument_n do_v signify_v sometime_o peter_n crabbe_n the_o collector_n of_o counsel_n do_v set_v down_o diverse_a act_n of_o counsel_n not_o only_o differ_v but_o also_o repugnant_a one_o to_o another_o fift_o diverse_a book_n be_v set_v forth_o under_o the_o name_n of_o father_n that_o no_o man_n can_v certain_o say_v be_v write_v by_o the_o father_n who_o name_n they_o carry_v nay_o some_o of_o they_o do_v contain_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n profess_v by_o the_o father_n sixth_o they_o be_v not_o certain_a either_o what_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n diverse_a doctor_n yield_v diverse_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n or_o what_o be_v the_o old_a latin_a translation_n for_o sixtus_n quintus_n set_v out_o the_o old_a vulgar_a latin_a translation_n after_o one_o sort_n and_o clement_n the_o eight_o after_o another_o and_o he_o that_o allow_v the_o translation_n of_o sixtus_n quintus_n must_v needs_o condemn_v that_o of_o clement_n the_o eight_o &_o contrariwise_o final_o see_v diverse_a papist_n assign_v diverse_a ground_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o scarce_o two_o of_o many_o do_v agree_v in_o all_o point_n concern_v their_o foundation_n and_o the_o assurance_n of_o they_o how_o can_v they_o pretend_v either_o unity_n or_o certainty_n in_o their_o religion_n three_o the_o foundation_n of_o popery_n be_v lay_v upon_o false_a decretal_n and_o lie_v legend_n hardly_o shall_v our_o adversary_n be_v able_a to_o deny_v their_o religion_n to_o be_v false_a and_o full_a of_o lie_n that_o the_o pope_n do_v in_o their_o decretales_fw-la report_v notorious_a lie_v it_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o decretale_n set_v out_o under_o the_o name_n of_o innocentius_n c._n quis_fw-la nesciat_fw-la do_v 11._o where_o he_o deni_v that_o any_o teach_v or_o gather_v church_n in_o france_n spain_n africa_n italy_n beside_o s._n peter_n and_o those_o which_o be_v send_v by_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n and_o likewise_o by_o the_o decretale_a of_o gregory_n the_o 4._o c._n in_o praeceptis_fw-la do_v 12._o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o all_o cause_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o the_o head_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o receive_v direction_n from_o whence_o it_o receive_v his_o beginning_n and_o by_o the_o chapter_n in_o novo_fw-la do_v 21._o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n make_v peter_n their_o prince_n and_o infinite_a other_o that_o the_o legend_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o receptacle_n of_o many_o tradition_n be_v full_a of_o lie_n i_o have_v show_v else_o where_o if_o kellison_n the_o survey_v or_o deny_v this_o let_v he_o prove_v unto_o we_o that_o s._n george_n kill_v a_o dragon_n ready_a to_o devour_v the_o king_n daughter_n of_o silena_n and_o conquer_a palestine_n that_o catharine_n overcome_v 50._o philosopher_n and_o convert_v the_o empress_n and_o the_o general_a of_o the_o emperor_n army_n and_o break_v a_o wheel_n with_o her_o prayer_n that_o with_o turn_v kill_v 4000_o pagan_n that_o s._n nicholas_n be_v a_o infant_n fast_v wednesday_n and_o friday_n that_o bernacus_fw-la yoke_v heart_n that_o saint_n brendan_n sail_v into_o paradise_n that_o a_o crucifix_n of_o wood_n resaluted_a bartilmew_n a_o monk_n of_o durrham_n that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n body_n be_v carry_v into_o heaven_n by_o angel_n that_o her_o house_n be_v carry_v over_o the_o sea_n first_o into_o dalmatia_n and_o then_o into_o italy_n and_o last_o to_o loreto_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o tale_n four_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n it_o follow_v that_o as_o oft_o as_o the_o pope_n die_v the_o church_n be_v without_o foundation_n it_o follow_v also_o that_o the_o pope_n go_v to_o hell_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o chap._n sipapa_n do_v 40._o that_o he_o may_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v lie_v in_o hell_n that_o the_o pope_n fall_v into_o heresy_n as_o liberius_n honorius_n 1_o john_n the_o 22._o and_o diverse_a other_o have_v do_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v fail_v which_o be_v matter_n absurd_a and_o impious_a to_o affirm_v five_o see_v diverse_a old_a tradition_n be_v now_o out_o of_o use_n as_o for_o example_n that_o of_o celebrate_v baptism_n at_o easter_n and_o pray_v stand_v betwixt_o easter_n and_o whitsuntide_n and_o of_o pray_v with_o our_o face_n turn_v to_o the_o east_n and_o such_o like_a it_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o foundation_n of_o popery_n be_v ruinous_a for_o why_o may_v not_o the_o like_o happen_v to_o other_o tradition_n as_o to_o these_o and_o if_o tradition_n be_v temporary_a and_o ruinous_a which_o they_o make_v equal_a to_o holy_a scripture_n what_o can_v they_o allege_v for_o the_o continuance_n and_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la which_o be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o holy_a scripture_n but_o also_o repugnant_a one_o to_o another_o six_o the_o old_a translation_n differ_v from_o itself_o in_o the_o edition_n of_o sixtus_n quintus_n and_o clement_n the_o eigth_n and_o other_o set_v out_o at_o colein_n louvain_n and_o antwerp_n and_o much_o more_o from_o the_o original_a book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o hebrew_n and_o new_a in_o greek_a and_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o diverse_a in_o the_o chief_a doctor_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o so_o repugnant_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o do_v necessary_o follow_v that_o popish_a religion_n be_v compose_v of_o contrary_a piece_n and_o can_v be_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v one_o and_o have_v only_o one_o firm_a foundation_n final_o there_o can_v be_v no_o consent_n or_o unity_n in_o the_o point_n of_o popish_a doctrine_n for_o that_o the_o same_o consist_v of_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o pope_n and_o be_v ground_v upon_o contrary_a tradition_n contrary_a legend_n contrary_a interpretation_n of_o father_n and_o schoolman_n and_o either_o of_o tradition_n or_o decretales_fw-la contrary_a to_o scripture_n or_o of_o sentence_n of_o father_n contrary_a to_o
we_o justice_n wisdom_n sanctification_n and_o redemption_n and_o that_o abraham_n believe_v it_o be_v impute_v to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n the_o prophet_n isaias_n cap._n 53._o show_v that_o by_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v 9_o they_o say_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n and_o by_o the_o work_v there_o of_o but_o the_o apostle_n gal._n 3._o say_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o no_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n before_o god_n and_o rom._n 4._o he_o show_v that_o abraham_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n do_v it_o not_o then_o manifest_o appear_v that_o these_o false_a apostle_n of_o antichrist_n teach_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o abraham_n or_o partaker_n of_o his_o faith_n 10_o thomas_n aquinas_n 2.2_o q._n 4._o art_n 3._o teach_v that_o christian_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o confess_v their_o faith_n at_o all_o time_n and_o this_o his_o follower_n diligent_o practice_v that_o by_o their_o wicked_a teacher_n be_v teach_v to_o aequivocate_v and_o dissemble_v their_o faith_n and_o profession_n but_o true_a christian_n be_v always_o bold_o to_o profess_v their_o faith_n and_o to_o yield_v a_o reason_n of_o the_o same_o for_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n who_o we_o be_v rather_o to_o credit_v than_o these_o false_a apostle_n 11_o for_o a_o lay_v man_n to_o dispute_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n they_o count_v it_o mortal_a sin_n especial_o know_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v forbid_v the_o same_o under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n as_o navarrus_n teach_v enchirid_a c._n 11._o but_o this_o show_v that_o papist_n do_v rather_o seek_v to_o suppress_v the_o faith_n then_o to_o teach_v matter_n of_o faith_n the_o same_o also_o appear_v for_o that_o they_o commend_v ignorance_n and_o thomas_n aquinas_n 2.2_o q._n 2._o art_n 6._o say_v that_o all_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o have_v explicit_a faith_n linwood_n in_o his_o gloss_n upon_o the_o constitution_n beginning_n ignorantia_fw-la de_fw-la summa_fw-la trinit_fw-la holdeth_z that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o lay_v man_n and_o simple_a people_n to_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n implicit_o or_o to_o believe_v as_o the_o catholic_a church_n believe_v and_o this_o be_v the_o faith_n that_o hosius_n commend_v in_o the_o collier_n but_o it_o show_v that_o our_o adversary_n seek_v to_o entertain_v the_o people_n in_o ignorance_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n while_o the_o masspriest_n sport_n and_o entertain_v themselves_o with_o all_o delight_n and_o live_v idle_o reap_v the_o fruit_n of_o poor_a man_n labour_n 12_o thomas_n aquinas_n p._n 3._o q._n 7._o art_n 3._o deni_v that_o christ_n have_v faith_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o shall_v make_v christ_n the_o author_n of_o our_o faith_n a_o pagan_a and_o a_o infidel_n further_o the_o same_o overthrow_v the_o popish_a definition_n of_o faith_n for_o either_o christ_n do_v not_o firm_o believe_v god_n word_n or_o else_o he_o have_v faith_n now_o to_o say_v that_o be_v plain_a blasphemy_n neither_o be_v that_o defence_n material_a that_o christ_n know_v all_o thing_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n of_o two_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n for_o that_o do_v not_o overthrow_v his_o humane_a nature_n nor_o hinder_v he_o for_o have_v faith_n without_o all_o imperfection_n final_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o pope_n only_o be_v to_o order_n and_o to_o publish_v the_o creed_n for_o that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o thomas_n aquinas_n 2._o 2._o q._n 1._o art_n 10._o and_o the_o rest_n no_o question_n believe_v it_o but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o overthrow_v not_o only_o the_o nicene_n and_o constantinopolitan_a confession_n but_o also_o the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o faith_n of_o christ_n for_o whatsoever_o face_n our_o adversary_n do_v set_v on_o matter_n they_o shall_v never_o show_v that_o these_o ancient_a creed_n do_v either_o depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o be_v by_o he_o order_v publish_v or_o confirm_v nay_o many_o pope_n we_o read_v of_o which_o for_o any_o thing_n we_o can_v understand_v do_v not_o believe_v the_o apostle_n creed_n upon_o this_o weak_a foundation_n of_o infidel_n pope_n the_o miserable_a papist_n do_v build_v their_o wind-shaken_a faith_n we_o do_v not_o therefore_o marvel_v if_o they_o rely_v more_o upon_o work_n than_o this_o faith_n and_o if_o they_o trust_v rather_o to_o be_v justify_v by_o good_a work_n than_o the_o pope_n erroneous_a faith_n but_o if_o they_o will_v consider_v what_o true_a faith_n be_v and_o how_o the_o same_o apply_v christ_n unto_o we_o and_o unit_v we_o unto_o he_o than_o will_v they_o abandon_v the_o error_n of_o popery_n of_o which_o we_o have_v give_v a_o taste_n in_o this_o article_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n chap._n v._o what_o papist_n do_v mean_a by_o the_o gospel_n the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o christian_n be_v the_o gladsome_a declaration_n of_o god_n favour_n offer_v to_o we_o through_o christ_n jesus_n and_o therefore_o the_o angel_n luc._n 2._o speak_v of_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n declare_v that_o he_o bring_v they_o tiding_n of_o great_a joy_n that_o shall_v be_v to_o all_o people_n but_o the_o papist_n by_o their_o new_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n do_v so_o confound_v the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n as_o if_o they_o seek_v to_o deprive_v christian_n of_o this_o joy_n and_o mean_v to_o alter_v the_o title_n of_o christ_n most_o joyful_a gospel_n for_o first_o as_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v a_o saviour_n or_o a_o redeemer_n but_o a_o lawgiver_n that_o be_v to_o propound_v a_o new_a law_n wherewith_o christian_n be_v to_o be_v new_o charge_v they_o call_v the_o gospel_n the_o new_a law_n but_o neither_o be_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n contain_v in_o the_o two_o table_n abolish_v nor_o be_v it_o christ_n intention_n to_o surcharge_n his_o people_n with_o new_a law_n and_o new_a bond_n but_o to_o free_v they_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n and_o to_o redeem_v they_o as_o for_o the_o order_n concern_v sacrament_n we_o may_v not_o repute_v they_o to_o be_v proper_o law_n but_o mean_n and_o direction_n for_o the_o right_n apply_v of_o god_n grace_n unto_o christian_n further_o the_o new_a law_n that_o god_n speak_v of_o be_v write_v in_o man_n heart_n as_o we_o read_v hierem._n 31._o and_o heb._n 8._o but_o the_o law_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o the_o papist_n speak_v of_o be_v partly_o write_v in_o scripture_n and_o partly_o in_o decretales_fw-la the_o papist_n therefore_o make_v christ_n a_o new_a lawgiver_n do_v overthrow_v his_o covenant_n of_o grace_n second_o this_o new_a law_n or_o testament_n as_o they_o say_v be_v the_o love_n of_o god_n shed_v into_o our_o heart_n for_o so_o do_v bellarmine_n teach_v lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 3._o but_o grant_v this_o and_o then_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v not_o include_v remission_n of_o sin_n for_o love_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n another_o but_o that_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v include_v remission_n of_o sin_n first_o our_o saviour_n do_v signify_v where_o he_o call_v the_o cup_n of_o thanksgiving_n the_o cup_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o chrysostome_n in_o 2._o cor._n 3._o and_o theodoret_n oecumenius_n and_o theophylact_n upon_o the_o same_o place_n direct_o affirm_v three_o thomas_n aquinas_n 1.2_o q._n 107._o art_n 4._o say_v that_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o new_a law_n or_o of_o the_o gospel_n as_o touch_v the_o inward_a work_n of_o virtue_n be_v more_o grievous_a than_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n quantum_fw-la ad_fw-la opera_fw-la virtutum_fw-la say_v he_o in_o actibus_fw-la interioribus_fw-la etc._n etc._n praeceptanovae_fw-la legis_fw-la sunt_fw-la graviora_fw-la this_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n math_n 11._o my_o yoke_n say_v he_o be_v easy_a and_o my_o burden_n light_n furthermore_o the_o same_o make_v the_o gospel_n not_o to_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o christian_a liberty_n and_o redemption_n but_o of_o bondage_n and_o greevance_n four_o the_o censurer_n of_o collein_n fol._n 204._o say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o proper_a doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o thou_o will_v enter_v into_o life_n keep_v the_o commandment_n and_o with_o they_o in_o effect_n do_v bellarmine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 3._o consent_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v nothing_o but_o charity_n shed_v into_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o this_o confound_v the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n for_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o charity_n be_v require_v by_o the_o law_n further_o the_o same_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o law_n say_v
christ_n humane_a nature_n as_o aquinas_n 3._o q._n 5._o art_n 2._o confess_v if_o he_o have_v take_v a_o heavenly_a body_n as_o valentine_n believe_v say_v aquinas_n then_o can_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n have_v be_v save_v which_o require_v flesh_n and_o bone_n in_o the_o 24._o of_o luke_n our_o saviour_n show_v that_o he_o have_v a_o body_n that_o both_o have_v flesh_n and_o bone_n and_o be_v to_o be_v selt_z and_o see_v 31._o in_o their_o abominable_a mass_n they_o make_v their_o polshorne_a priest_n mediator_n for_o christ_n make_v they_o to_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v look_v upon_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n with_o a_o propitious_a and_o serene_a countenance_n supra_fw-la quae_fw-la say_v the_o priest_n look_v upon_o the_o sacrifice_n as_o they_o call_v it_o of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n propitio_fw-la ac_fw-la sereno_fw-la vultu_fw-la respacere_fw-la digneris_fw-la &_o accepta_fw-la habere_fw-la etc._n etc._n 32._o they_o compare_v also_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o brute_n beast_n offer_v by_o abel_n and_o to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o melchisedech_n pray_v that_o god_n will_v accept_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n as_o he_o accept_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o melchisedech_n and_o abel_n which_o be_v a_o most_o blasphemous_a comparison_n 33._o in_o the_o mass_n also_o they_o confess_v their_o sin_n to_o god_n to_o angel_n and_o saint_n joint_o and_o not_o to_o christ._n nay_o they_o use_v the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n in_o their_o confession_n of_o sin_n to_o angel_n and_o saint_n prefer_v they_o as_o much_o before_o christ_n as_o a_o prince_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o mediator_n and_o hushier_v 34._o in_o a_o certain_a provincial_a constitution_n beginning_n authoritate_fw-la de_fw-fr sentent_fw-fr excom_n they_o excommunicate_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n almighty_n and_o of_o saint_n and_o leave_v out_o christ_n 35._o they_o say_v mass_n in_o honour_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n but_o he_o in_o who_o honour_n a_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v be_v great_a than_o the_o sacrifice_n do_v it_o not_o then_o appear_v that_o while_o they_o pretend_v to_o offer_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o honour_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n that_o they_o make_v he_o inferior_a to_o angel_n and_o saint_n 36._o they_o call_v the_o pope_n the_o head_n king_n spouse_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o this_o can_v be_v without_o extreme_a wrong_n to_o christ_n for_o one_o king_n doom_n can_v admit_v two_o king_n nor_o a_o viceke_a while_n the_o king_n be_v present_a nor_o can_v one_o woman_n have_v two_o spouse_n or_o one_o body_n two_o head_n or_o one_o house_n two_o diverse_a foundation_n the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 3._o show_v that_o no_o man_n can_v lay_v other_o foundation_n then_o that_o which_o be_v already_o lay_v ephes_n 5._o he_o say_v christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n &_o the_o saviour_n of_o his_o body_n the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n therefore_o show_v herself_o a_o strange_a beast_n that_o will_v needs_o have_v two_o head_n and_o two_o foundation_n be_v altogether_o so_o diverse_a 37._o s._n james_n show_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o lawgiver_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v able_a to_o save_v and_o destroy_v the_o do_v therefore_o spoil_v christ_n of_o his_o honour_n that_o give_v this_o title_n of_o lawgiver_n to_o the_o pope_n 38._o they_o do_v also_o prefer_v the_o pope_n before_o christ_n for_o christ_n body_n when_o the_o pope_n go_v on_o progress_n be_v send_v before_o with_o the_o baggage_n and_o when_o the_o pope_n be_v near_o go_v out_o to_o meet_v he_o while_o all_o the_o gallant_n of_o room_n attend_v on_o the_o pope_n 39_o they_o give_v authority_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o draw_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n by_o his_o indulgence_n and_o to_o make_v portsale_n of_o christ_n merit_n but_o he_o that_o be_v sell_v be_v never_o equal_a to_o the_o seller_n neither_o can_v the_o papist_n show_v that_o ever_o christ_n deliver_v one_o soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n 40._o papist_n believe_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v often_o time_n create_v his_o creator_n or_o at_o the_o least_o make_v christ_n body_n and_o blood_n but_o that_o christ_n make_v the_o pope_n it_o can_v be_v show_v do_v it_o not_o then_o appear_v that_o by_o many_o degree_n the_o pope_n excel_v christ_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o papist_n 41._o nay_o they_o make_v s._n francis_n and_o dominicke_n equal_a to_o christ_n in_o diverse_a thing_n and_o in_o some_o thing_n superior_a as_o their_o book_n of_o conformity_n and_o legend_n do_v testify_v they_o call_v s._n francis_n jesum_fw-la typicum_fw-la that_o be_v a_o figurative_a jesus_n and_o say_v that_o dominicke_n and_o francis_n do_v more_o miracle_n than_o christ_n but_o the_o pope_n give_v both_o these_o two_o all_o their_o credit_n he_o must_v therefore_o needs_o surpass_v christ_n in_o account_n of_o papist_n 42._o in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n cornelius_n bishop_n of_o bitonto_n say_v papa_n lux_fw-la venit_fw-la in_o mundum_fw-la the_o pope_n the_o light_n come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o simon_n begnius_n in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n call_v leo_n the_o ten_o the_o lion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n and_o cry_v out_o te_fw-la leo_fw-la beatissime_fw-la saluatorem_fw-la expectavimus_fw-la that_o be_v we_o bless_a leo_n have_v look_v for_o thou_o our_o saviour_n 43._o beno_n the_o cardinal_n show_v that_o gregory_n the_o seven_o cast_v christ_n body_n into_o the_o fire_n burn_v the_o saviour_n of_o papist_n pius_fw-la the_o five_o also_o be_v say_v to_o have_v cast_v a_o agnus_fw-la dei_fw-la into_o the_o fire_n as_o catena_n in_o his_o life_n report_v into_o this_o contempt_n have_v the_o pupist_n bring_v their_o god_n 44_o theodorie_n à_fw-la niem_fw-la lib._n primo_fw-la de_fw-la schismate_fw-la show_v that_o vrbane_n the_o pope_n melt_v cross_n and_o image_n of_o silver_n to_o pay_v soldier_n thus_o that_o which_o they_o pretend_v to_o honour_v as_o god_n they_o sell_v and_o give_v away_o in_o service_n of_o the_o devil_n 45_o they_o give_v equal_a honour_n to_o a_o cross_n of_o wood_n and_o mettle_n and_o to_o christ_n and_o look_v on_o a_o wooden_a crucifixo_fw-la they_o say_v thou_o have_v redeem_v us._n who_o then_o see_v not_o what_o little_a account_n they_o make_v of_o christ_n 46_o a_o trental_a of_o mass_n the_o masspriest_n sell_v for_o less_o sometime_o than_o six_o penny_n and_o yet_o they_o say_v christ_n body_n be_v offer_v in_o every_o mass_n be_v they_o not_o therefore_o more_o wicked_a traitor_n than_o judas_n who_o will_v not_o fell_v christ_n for_o less_o than_o 30._o penny_n 47_o the_o priesthood_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n be_v proper_a to_o christ_n by_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n but_o the_o papist_n make_v every_o pilled_a pated_a companion_n a_o priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n final_o the_o office_n of_o mediator_n proper_o belong_v to_o christ_n they_o communicate_v with_o the_o virgin_n mary_n who_o they_o suppose_v to_o be_v more_o merciful_a than_o christ_n they_o give_v it_o also_o to_o angel_n and_o saint_n and_o masspriest_n turrecremata_fw-la summae_fw-la lib._n 1._o c._n 40._o speak_v of_o priest_n say_v they_o be_v mediator_n reconcile_a sinner_n to_o god_n ministerium_fw-la peragunt_fw-la mediatoris_fw-la omnipotenti_fw-la deo_fw-la qui_fw-la offensus_fw-la fuerat_fw-la peccatores_fw-la reconciliando_fw-la the_o schoolman_n say_v also_o that_o saint_n may_v be_v call_v redeemer_n and_o that_o be_v confess_v by_o bellarmine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la indulgentijs_fw-la infinite_a it_o be_v to_o report_v all_o the_o blasphemous_a speech_n and_o practice_n of_o papist_n against_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n jesus_n but_o this_o may_v serve_v to_o show_v that_o they_o rather_o blaspheme_v than_o honour_n christ_n speak_v so_o wicked_o of_o his_o person_n so_o blasphemous_o of_o his_o body_n so_o false_o of_o his_o action_n and_o take_v away_o his_o honour_n and_o give_v the_o same_o to_o other_o chap._n vii_o the_o strange_a contradictory_n and_o false_a opinion_n of_o papist_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n as_o sacrament_n be_v seal_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o holy_a mystery_n by_o the_o which_o god_n work_v our_o sanctification_n so_o be_v they_o enemy_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o the_o sanctification_n of_o christian_n that_o pervert_v the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o christ_n institution_n concern_v sacrament_n how_o then_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o excuse_v themselves_o and_o to_o prove_v themselves_o not_o to_o be_v envious_a of_o the_o good_a of_o christian_n i_o report_v i_o to_o their_o common_a doctrine_n and_o practice_v concern_v this_o argument_n for_o first_o they_o deny_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n do_v open_a heaven_n and_o thereupon_o thrust_v all_o the_o
si_fw-la huius_fw-la quae_fw-la ab_fw-la ipso_fw-la docebatur_fw-la fidei_fw-la particeps_fw-la esset_fw-la so_o likewise_o the_o pope_n grant_v indulgence_n to_o all_o those_o that_o fight_n for_o their_o sect_n whatsoever_o outrage_n and_o villainy_n they_o have_v commit_v neither_o do_v priest_n refuse_v absolution_n to_o any_o of_o their_o sect_n if_o they_o be_v rule_v by_o they_o bellarmine_n lib._n 2._o the_o eccles_n c._n 2._o require_v neither_o faith_n nor_o virtue_n in_o a_o christian_a if_o he_o profess_v outward_o the_o romish_a faith_n 43._o the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n 4._o do_v condemn_v they_o as_o heretic_n that_o forbid_v man_n to_o marry_v &_o entoin_v they_o abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n recte_fw-la posuit_fw-la prohibentium_fw-la nubere_fw-la say_v theodoret_n in_o 1._o tim._n 4._o neque_fw-la enim_fw-la caelibatum_fw-la aut_fw-la continentiam_fw-la vituperat_fw-la sed_fw-la eos_fw-la accusat_fw-la qui_fw-la lege_fw-la lata_fw-la ea_fw-la sequi_fw-la compellunt_fw-la but_o papist_n by_o law_n forbid_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o of_o such_o as_o have_v vow_v single_a life_n and_o have_v make_v diverse_a law_n against_o eat_a flesh_n burn_v all_o that_o teach_v otherwise_o 44._o the_o heretic_n call_v anomi_n be_v condemn_v for_o corrupt_v the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o i_o have_v show_v that_o the_o papist_n by_o their_o irregular_a doctrine_n and_o tradition_n have_v not_o only_o corrupt_v it_o but_o also_o disannul_v it_o for_o the_o most_o part_n 45._o irenaeus_n advers_a haeres_fw-la c._n 2._o range_v they_o among_o heretic_n that_o accuse_v scripture_n as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o right_a or_o not_o of_o authority_n or_o diverse_o to_o be_v understand_v or_o not_o sufficient_a without_o tradition_n quasi_fw-la non_fw-la rectè_fw-la habeant_fw-la neque_fw-la sint_fw-la ex_fw-la authoritate_fw-la &_o quia_fw-la variè_fw-la sunt_fw-la dictae_fw-la &_o quia_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la ex_fw-la his_fw-la inveniri_fw-la veritas_fw-la ab_fw-la his_fw-la qui_fw-la nesciant_fw-la traditionem_fw-la all_o which_o quality_n be_v incident_a to_o the_o papist_n for_o they_o complain_v of_o their_o flexibility_n and_o insufficiency_n and_o without_o the_o church_n determination_n make_v they_o to_o we_o of_o no_o authority_n tertullian_n lib._n the_o praescrip_n advers_a haeret_fw-la say_v some_o heretic_n by_o their_o hand_n other_o by_o exposition_n pervert_v scripture_n alius_fw-la say_v he_o mancel_v scripturas_fw-la alius_fw-la sensu_fw-la expositiones_fw-la interuertit_fw-la the_o papist_n excel_v in_o both_o for_o by_o their_o addition_n and_o false_a version_n they_o have_v falsify_v scripture_n and_o their_o commentary_n in_o case_n controverse_v be_v nothing_o but_o perversion_n and_o false_a exposition_n of_o scripture_n turrian_n write_v against_o that_o worthy_a servant_n of_o god_n master_n sadeel_n do_v call_v the_o scripture_n delphicum_fw-la gladium_fw-la or_o a_o instrument_n serve_v to_o diverse_a purpose_n other_o call_v they_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n or_o a_o shipman_n hose_n some_o esteem_v they_o a_o matter_n of_o strife_n 46._o isidore_n lib._n 8._o orig_n c._n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la do_v declare_v they_o to_o be_v heretic_n that_o do_v otherwise_o understand_v the_o scripture_n than_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n require_v quicunque_fw-la aliter_fw-la scripturam_fw-la sacram_fw-la intelligit_fw-la say_v he_o quàm_fw-la sensus_fw-la spiritus_fw-la san●●i_fw-la flagitat_fw-la licet_fw-la de_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la recesserit_fw-la tamen_fw-la haereticus_fw-la potest_fw-la appellari_fw-la but_o this_o be_v a_o common_a fault_n of_o papist_n throughout_o all_o their_o book_n of_o controversy_n and_o commentary_n 47._o as_o the_o herodian_o do_v give_v the_o title_n and_o honour_n of_o christ_n to_o herode_fw-la and_o be_v therefore_o repute_v heretic_n by_o damascene_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la so_o the_o papist_n do_v give_v christ_n title_n and_o honour_n to_o the_o pope_n call_v he_o the_o head_n and_o foundation_n and_o spouse_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o christ_n why_o then_o shall_v they_o not_o be_v call_v papal_a heretic_n aswell_o as_o the_o other_o herodian_a heretic_n 48._o damascene_fw-la account_v they_o heretic_n that_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christian_n and_o mislike_v their_o study_n of_o scripture_n gnosimachi_n say_v he_o omni_fw-la christianorum_fw-la cognitioni_fw-la ac_fw-la scientiae_fw-la ita_fw-la adversantur_fw-la ut_fw-la vanum_fw-la &_o minus_fw-la necessarium_fw-la laborem_fw-la esse_fw-la dicant_fw-la corum_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o diumis_fw-la scripture_n aliquam_fw-la exquirunt_fw-la scientiam_fw-la the_o papist_n likewise_o condemn_v lay-man_n that_o read_v &_o study_v scripture_n especial_o in_o vulgar_a tong_n and_o commend_v ignorance_n they_o do_v also_o speak_v high_a commendation_n of_o a_o collier_n faith_n and_o think_v it_o sufficient_a without_o more_o ado_n that_o they_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n do_v 49._o the_o ethnophromans_n be_v likewise_o put_v in_o the_o role_n of_o heretic_n for_o that_o they_o bring_v in_o diverse_a heathenish_a dustome_n into_o the_o church_n as_o we_o may_v read_v in_o damascene_fw-la de_fw-la haeresibus_fw-la if_o then_o the_o papist_n have_v their_o right_n they_o be_v there_o also_o for_o their_o carnenal_n candle_n bear_v holy_a water_n cense_v of_o image_n and_o infinite_a such_o trick_n to_o be_v calendr_v among_o heretic_n 50._o the_o dislike_n of_o second_o marriage_n express_v c._n de_o his_o 31._o q._n 1._o and_o for_o that_o they_o debar_v such_o from_o priesthood_n be_v borrow_v from_o the_o montanist_n 51._o in_o the_o roman_a cathechisme_n part_n 1._o in_o exposit_n 3._o art_n fid_fw-we they_o teach_v that_o our_o saviour_n pass_v out_o of_o his_o mother_n womb_n as_o the_o ray_n of_o the_o sun_n do_v pierce_v through_o the_o substance_n of_o glass_n quomodo_fw-la solis_fw-la radij_fw-la concretam_fw-la vitri_fw-la substantiam_fw-la penetrant_fw-la but_o this_o heresy_n do_v quite_o overthrow_v the_o article_n of_o the_o nativity_n of_o our_o saviour_n 52._o the_o conventicle_n of_o 6._o of_o sect_n 6._o trent_n teach_v we_o always_o in_o this_o life_n to_o doubt_v of_o god_n favour_n towards_o we_o and_o of_o our_o own_o salvation_n but_o this_o heresy_n show_v that_o the_o papist_n teach_v infidelity_n rather_o than_o true_a faith_n 53._o final_o if_o heresy_n be_v a_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o faith_n as_o ocham_n say_v or_o to_o scripture_n as_o robert_n grosth_v affirm_v apud_fw-la matth._n paris_n in_o henrico_n 3._o or_o to_o conclusion_n deduce_v out_o of_o scripture_n as_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n signify_v apud_fw-la aen._n sylu._n the_o gest_n council_n basil_n lib._n 1._o then_o be_v all_o the_o opinion_n of_o papist_n condemn_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o heresy_n as_o be_v repugnant_a to_o canonical_a scripture_n and_o the_o faith_n deduce_v out_o of_o they_o and_o these_o heresy_n albeit_o ancient_o condemn_v be_v yet_o general_o hold_v by_o the_o papist_n but_o if_o i_o shall_v rehearse_v the_o particular_a heresy_n of_o pope_n and_o their_o chief_a doctor_n there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n of_o the_o rehearsal_n gelasius_n the_o pope_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o picenum_n say_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o man_n be_v depraty_v by_o original_a sin_n which_o import_v rather_o the_o destruction_n of_o nature_n than_o the_o loss_n of_o grace_n according_a to_o his_o opinion_n the_o master_n of_o sentence_n lib._n 2._o do_v 31._o teach_v that_o the_o flesh_n only_o and_o not_o the_o soul_n be_v make_v unclean_a by_o original_a sin_n likewise_o lib._n 1_o do_v 24._o he_o say_v that_o name_n of_o number_n put_v nothing_o in_o the_o trinity_n which_o overthrow_v the_o real_a distinction_n of_o the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n again_o lib._n 1_o do_v 17._o he_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v nothing_o but_o charity_n whereby_o we_o love_v god_n his_o addendum_fw-la say_v he_o quòd_fw-la ipse_fw-la idem_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sanctus_fw-la est_fw-la amor_fw-la sive_fw-la charitas_fw-la qua_fw-la nos_fw-la diligimus_fw-la deum_fw-la &_o proximum_fw-la which_o overthrow_v the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n john_n the_o 22._o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o letter_n of_o michael_n cesenas_n place_v after_o the_o work_n of_o occam_n deny_v the_o personal_a distinction_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o deny_v also_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a do_v see_v god_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o abbot_n joachim_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o chap._n damnamus_fw-la de_fw-fr sum_n trin_n &_o sid_n cath_z say_v that_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v one_o non_fw-la unitate_fw-la essentiae_fw-la sed_fw-la collectionis_fw-la tantum_fw-la not_o by_o unity_n of_o essence_n but_o by_o unity_n of_o collection_n as_o diverse_a citizen_n make_v one_o people_n which_o overthrow_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n albert_n upon_o the_o first_o book_n of_o sentence_n do_v 9_o and_o thomas_n aquinas_n in_o scripto_fw-la confess_v that_o speak_v of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o
trinity_n we_o may_v say_v three_o eternal_o adiective_o which_o be_v direct_v against_o the_o creed_n of_o athanasius_n the_o friar_n of_o the_o order_n of_o dominicke_n and_o francis_n anno_fw-la d._n 1243._o as_o matth._n paris_n testify_v in_o henrico_n 3._o p._n 593._o teach_v that_o the_o divine_a essence_n be_v not_o formal_o the_o same_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n which_o may_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o deity_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n augustine_n steuchus_n in_o princip_n genes_z say_v that_o coelum_fw-la empyreum_fw-la be_v coeternall_a with_o god_n he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v make_v two_o god_n the_o same_o man_n in_o genes_n 2._o say_v that_o adam_n shall_v have_v die_v although_o he_o have_v never_o sin_v he_o deni_v also_o that_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o death_n oppose_v his_o opinion_n to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n rom._n 5._o hector_n pintus_fw-la in_o danielis_fw-la 12._o deni_v the_o resurrection_n of_o infant_n die_v not_o baptize_v to_o let_v other_o pass_v for_o this_o time_n and_o to_o talk_v only_o of_o the_o rubicundious_a cardinal_n bellarmine_n who_o our_o chatemiticall_a masspriest_n call_v master_n first_o lib._n 2._o de_fw-la christo_fw-la c._n 26._o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o one_o person_n to_o be_v both_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o if_o there_o can_v be_v three_o person_n there_o be_v but_o two_o only_a second_o every_o act_n whereby_o virginity_n be_v lose_v he_o call_v coinquination_n and_o turpitude_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la matrimonio_fw-la c._n 5._o as_o if_o the_o marriage_n bed_n be_v not_o true_o undefiled_a as_o the_o apostle_n say_v heb._n 13._o three_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n never_o have_v but_o the_o christian_a church_n for_o his_o spouse_n the_o cleric_a lib._n 1._o c._n 24._o which_o exclude_v the_o church_n of_o god_n before_o christ_n from_o his_o espousal_n and_o from_o the_o right_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v true_o his_o spouse_n four_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr bonis_fw-la operibus_fw-la he_o seem_v to_o allow_v community_n of_o wife_n in_o his_o second_o book_n de_fw-fr amiss_o great_a c._n 18._o he_o teach_v that_o the_o magistrate_n sin_v not_o in_o appoint_v a_o several_a place_n of_o the_o city_n to_o common_a whore_n like_o a_o lusty_a cardinal_n allow_v whore_n but_o like_o a_o false_a apostle_n condemn_v marriage_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr monachis_fw-la c._n 14._o he_o say_v the_o saint_n do_v participate_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n but_o better_a divine_n than_o he_o define_v that_o god_n essence_n be_v incommunicable_a in_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr purgatorio_fw-la c._n 10._o he_o confess_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v call_v his_o own_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n thus_o he_o have_v bring_v his_o scholar_n to_o a_o fair_a pass_n for_o diminish_v and_o deny_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n in_o our_o formal_a justification_n and_o redemption_n he_o will_v make_v they_o believe_v that_o every_o man_n may_v redeem_v and_o save_v himself_o and_o thus_o you_o have_v see_v a_o large_a pack_n of_o popish_a heresy_n at_o the_o first_o survey_n but_o we_o shall_v add_v more_o if_o need_v be_v at_o our_o next_o chap._n ix_o a_o catalogue_n of_o diverse_a notorious_a impicty_n and_o blasphemy_n contain_v not_o only_o in_o popish_a book_n but_o also_o in_o the_o corpse_n of_o popish_a religion_n if_o it_o be_v no_o small_a sin_n to_o take_v the_o name_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a how_o heinous_a a_o sin_n be_v it_o to_o blaspheme_v the_o holy_a name_n of_o god_n all_o sin_n compare_v to_o blasphemy_n say_v strabus_n in_o isaiae_n c._n 18._o may_v seem_v light_a so_o grievous_a it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n sometime_o avoid_v the_o name_n of_o it_o and_o in_o lieu_n thereof_o use_v the_o word_n of_o 1._o of_o job._n 1._o benediction_n yei_fw-it be_v blasphemy_n so_o common_a in_o the_o mouth_n and_o writing_n of_o papist_n that_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o impiety_n though_o otherwise_o intolerable_a seem_v small_a in_o comparison_n hardly_o can_v they_o speak_v without_o blaspheme_v the_o roman_a catechism_n in_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o three_o commandment_n or_o the_o second_o as_o the_o papist_n reckon_v confess_v against_o they_o this_o abuse_n quis_fw-la non_fw-la videat_fw-la say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o catechism_n omne_fw-la iurevirando_fw-la affirmari_fw-la omne_fw-la imprecationibus_fw-la &_o execrationibus_fw-la referta_fw-la esse_fw-la that_o be_v who_o see_v not_o that_o all_o thing_n be_v affirm_v with_o oath_n and_o that_o all_o man_n mouth_n be_v full_a of_o curse_n and_o execration_n whosoever_o have_v be_v conversant_a among_o papist_n know_v this_o to_o be_v true_a they_o tear_v god_n in_o piece_n and_o neither_o respect_n the_o law_n of_o god_n nor_o man_n albeit_o the_o emperor_n in_o the_o law_n ne_fw-fr quis_fw-la luxurietur_fw-la etc._n etc._n call_v this_o tear_n and_o blaspheme_v unnatural_a luxury_n they_o teach_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n blood_n flesh_n and_o bone_n and_o call_v it_o their_o lord_n and_o god_n and_o yet_o like_o cannibal_n they_o cate_z and_o swallow_v down_o their_o lord_n and_o god_n and_o make_v no_o bone_n of_o it_o blasphemous_o also_o they_o affirm_v that_o a_o dog_n or_o a_o hog_n eat_v a_o consecrate_a host_n do_v eat_v christ_n true_a body_n if_o a_o dog_n or_o hog_n 45._o hog_n p._n 4._o q._n 45._o say_v alexander_n hales_n shall_v eat_v a_o consecrate_a host_n i_o see_v no_o cause_n but_o the_o lord_n body_n shall_v go_v therewithal_o into_o to_o that_o dog_n or_o hog_n belly_n and_o thomas_n aquinas_n 3._o p._n sum_n where_o some_o of_o his_o fellow_n be_v ashamed_a of_o this_o error_n reprehend_v they_o for_o it_o allow_v this_o beastly_a devour_a of_o christ_n body_n gregory_n the_o seven_o as_o we_o read_v in_o beno_n cardinalis_fw-la consult_v with_o this_o god_n of_o paste_n &_o when_o he_o can_v receive_v no_o answer_n throw_v he_o into_o the_o fire_n joannes_n portuensis_n as_o he_o report_v disclose_v the_o matter_n tale_n quid_fw-la fecit_fw-la hildebrandus_fw-la unde_fw-la deberemus_fw-la viut_a incendi_fw-la say_v he_o this_o fact_n say_v beno_n be_v that_o he_o throw_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n into_o the_o fire_n because_o he_o can_v receive_v no_o answer_n of_o it_o against_o the_o emperor_n pius_fw-la the_o fist_n cast_v one_o agnus_fw-la dei_fw-la into_o the_o water_n of_o tiber_n another_o into_o the_o fire_n as_o say_v hierome_n catena_n in_o pius_n his_o life_n cresciuto_fw-mi il_fw-fr tevere_a say_v he_o pio_fw-la vi_fw-la gittò_fw-la un_fw-it agnus_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o il_fw-it fuoco_fw-it appreso_fw-it in_o una_fw-la casa_fw-la piena_fw-it di_fw-it fieno_fw-la vi_fw-la si_fw-la get_fw-fr to_o un_fw-fr altero_fw-la if_o then_o latria_fw-la be_v due_a to_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n then_o do_v pius_n cast_v that_o into_o the_o fire_n and_o the_o water_n that_o he_o worship_v as_o god_n clement_n the_o six_o in_o the_o chapter_n unigenitus_fw-la ext_fw-la come_v de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la &_o remiss_a make_v the_o romanistes_n thus_o to_o cry_v to_o the_o pope_n domine_fw-la aperi_fw-la eye_n thesanrum_fw-la tuum_fw-la fontem_fw-la aquae_fw-la vive_fw-fr lord_n open_a to_o they_o thy_o treasure_n the_o founteine_v of_o live_a water_n as_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v with_o he_o a_o treasure_n of_o grace_n and_o as_o if_o his_o indulgence_n be_v the_o water_n of_o life_n the_o masspriest_n every_o day_n sell_v christ_n and_o that_o for_o mere_a trifle_n brigit_fw-la therefore_o as_o one_o report_v in_o a_o treatise_n call_v onus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la c._n 23._o say_v they_o be_v worse_o than_o judas_n for_o he_o sell_v christ_n for_o good_a money_n these_o sell_v he_o for_o every_o commodity_n pro_fw-la omni_fw-la mercimonio_fw-la the_o honour_n of_o god_n they_o ascribe_v to_o the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o to_o saint_n confess_v their_o sin_n they_o join_v mary_n with_o god_n and_o leave_v out_o christ_n say_v consiteor_fw-la deo_fw-la omnipotenti_fw-la b._n mariae_fw-la semper_fw-la virgini_fw-la etc._n etc._n likewise_o in_o a_o certain_a provincial_a constitution_n beginning_n authoritate_fw-la dei_fw-la omnipotentis_fw-la de_fw-la send_v exc_fw-la they_o pronounce_v excommunication_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n and_o our_o lady_n and_o vouchfase_n not_o once_o to_o name_n christ_n against_o the_o breaker_n of_o their_o law_n they_o denounce_v the_o anger_n of_o peter_n and_o paul_n as_o appear_v common_o in_o late_a decretales_fw-la christ_n they_o quite_o forget_v horatius_n tursellinus_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o peter_n aldobrandini_n prefix_v before_o the_o history_n of_o our_o lady_n of_o loreto_n and_o allow_v much_o by_o the_o jebusite_n say_v that_o god_n make_v the_o virgin_n mary_n as_o much_o as_o can_v be_v companion_n and_o partaker_n of_o his_o power_n and_o majesty_n and_o give_v to_o her_o the_o rule_n
therefore_o think_v that_o either_o the_o christian_n there_o make_v the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o else_o worship_v and_o burn_v incense_n to_o they_o and_o very_o absurd_a it_o be_v if_o any_o man_n shall_v suppose_v that_o the_o popish_a invocation_n and_o worship_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o their_o practice_n philo_z in_o legate_n ad_fw-la caium_fw-la say_v the_o jew_n think_v it_o impious_a either_o in_o picture_n or_o grave_v work_n to_o represent_v god_n that_o be_v invisible_a invisibilem_fw-la deum_fw-la pingere_fw-la aut_fw-la singere_fw-la nefas_fw-la duxerunt_fw-la maiores_fw-la nostri_fw-la say_v he_o neither_o if_o we_o run_v through_o the_o bible_n shall_v we_o find_v any_o precedent_n of_o the_o popish_a invocation_n and_o worship_n of_o saint_n use_v in_o the_o romish_a church_n final_o if_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n have_v know_v or_o suspect_v that_o s._n peter_n or_o his_o successor_n have_v be_v design_v christ_n vicar_n general_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o church_n and_o appoint_v to_o give_v law_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n then_o will_v they_o never_o have_v suffer_v he_o to_o depart_v from_o jerusalem_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n therefore_o must_v seek_v some_o other_o place_n than_o jerusalem_n whence_o to_o derive_v their_o doctrine_n law_n ceremony_n and_o form_n of_o government_n or_o else_o they_o will_v never_o find_v out_o the_o true_a descent_n of_o their_o church_n in_o babylon_n certes_o they_o shall_v rather_o find_v out_o these_o matter_n than_o in_o jerusalem_n chap._n xii_o that_o popish_a religion_n be_v never_o teach_v either_o by_o the_o old_a prophet_n or_o by_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n jesus_n faithful_a christian_n as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o ephes_n 2._o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n and_o this_o the_o papist_n must_v needs_o confess_v although_o much_o to_o their_o grief_n unless_o they_o will_v deny_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o popery_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o upon_o his_o decretales_fw-la and_o determination_n and_o support_v stout_o by_o his_o purple_a cardinal_n and_o the_o merchant_n of_o babylon_n the_o masspriest_n and_o neither_o upon_o christ_n nor_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n the_o apostle_n 2._o tim._n 3._o show_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v able_a to_o make_v we_o wise_a to_o salvation_n and_o be_v give_v of_o god_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v absolute_a and_o make_v perfect_a unto_o all_o good_a work_n but_o papist_n teach_v that_o they_o be_v a_o imperfect_a rule_n and_o without_o tradition_n unsufficient_a for_o that_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o bellarmine_n and_o all_o his_o consort_n they_o do_v also_o rail_v against_o holy_a scripture_n and_o call_v they_o a_o dead_a and_o kill_a letter_n the_o holy_a prophet_n bring_v no_o message_n to_o those_o nation_n to_o who_o they_o be_v send_v but_o they_o confirm_v the_o same_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n that_o send_v they_o say_v thus_o say_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v speak_v it_o but_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n confirm_v their_o doctrine_n by_o their_o own_o pleasure_n for_o the_o most_o part_n and_o albeit_o sometime_o the_o same_o allege_v scripture_n yet_o their_o best_a and_o common_a argument_n be_v placet_fw-la nobis_fw-la their_o school_n doctor_n also_o for_o matter_n controverse_v do_v more_o common_o allege_v the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la than_o holy_a scripture_n rom._n 10._o we_o read_v that_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o camsius_fw-la in_o his_o catechism_n the_o sid_n &_o symb_n signify_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v god_n word_n reveal_v unless_o the_o same_o be_v also_o propound_v by_o the_o church_n and_o by_o the_o church_n he_o understand_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n peter_n and_o john_n act._n 4._o show_n that_o god_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v obey_v then_o man_n but_o the_o romish_a church_n do_v excommunicate_v all_o that_o harken_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n whatsoever_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o the_o contrary_n the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n sess_n 4._o teach_v we_o that_o we_o be_v to_o embrace_v tradition_n not_o write_v with_o equal_a affection_n to_o tradition_n and_o holy_a scripture_n but_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o know_v either_o to_o the_o apostle_n or_o prophet_n nay_o moses_n do_v teach_v quite_o contrary_a you_o shall_v put_v nothing_o to_o the_o word_n which_o i_o command_v you_o nor_o shall_v you_o take_v aught_o therefrom_o say_v he_o deut._n 4._o and_o s._n paul_n galat._n 1._o if_o any_o man_n preach_v unto_o you_o otherwise_o than_o that_o you_o have_v receive_v say_v he_o let_v he_o be_v accurse_v this_o curse_n therefore_o do_v fall_v on_o the_o friar_n and_o mass_n priest_n that_o preach_v the_o pope_n doctrine_n which_o they_o shall_v never_o prove_v to_o have_v be_v receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n though_o they_o read_v until_o their_o eye_n drop_v out_o of_o their_o head_n the_o religion_n of_o papist_n do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n consist_v in_o prayer_n to_o saint_n mass_n and_o office_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o angel_n the_o virgin_n mary_n martyr_n confessor_n and_o the_o pope_n canonize_a creature_n in_o erect_v of_o cross_n and_o crucifix_n and_o other_o image_n in_o burn_a incense_n before_o image_n nay_o they_o give_v divine_a honour_n to_o creature_n which_o themselves_n can_v deny_v to_o be_v idolatrous_a cum_fw-la christus_fw-la adoretur_fw-la adoratione_n latriae_fw-la consequens_fw-la est_fw-la quòd_fw-la cius_fw-la imago_fw-la sit_fw-la adoratione_n latriae_fw-la adoranda_fw-la see_v christ_n say_v thomas_n aquinas_n p._n 3._o q._n 25._o art_n 3._o be_v worship_v with_o latria_fw-la or_o honour_n proper_o belong_v to_o god_n it_o follow_v that_o his_o image_n be_v also_o to_o be_v worship_v with_o the_o adoration_n of_o latria_fw-la or_o divine_a worship_n either_o therefore_o must_v our_o adversary_n show_n that_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n offer_v sacrifice_n in_o honour_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n and_o make_v prayer_n unto_o they_o and_o set_v up_o image_n to_o be_v worship_v in_o temple_n and_o use_v to_o burn_v incense_n unto_o they_o and_o to_o honour_v they_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o papist_n or_o else_o they_o must_v confess_v that_o their_o religion_n proceed_v not_o from_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n how_o hard_o this_o proof_n will_v be_v it_o may_v appear_v in_o this_o that_o god_n law_n deut._n 4._o and_o exod._n 20._o direct_o forbid_v the_o make_n of_o grave_a image_n after_o the_o likeness_n of_o god_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o idol_n and_o christ_n ordain_v the_o eucharist_n to_o be_v receive_v in_o commemoration_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n and_o never_o so_o much_o as_o mention_v the_o offering_n of_o his_o own_o body_n and_o blood_n or_o other_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o saint_n and_o angel_n the_o masspriest_n that_o plot_v the_o ruin_n of_o religion_n at_o trent_n sess_v 6._o ascribe_v man_n justification_n to_o his_o work_n and_o exclude_v justification_n both_o by_o christ_n justice_n and_o by_o faith_n apprehend_v christ_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o both_o the_o prophet_n abacuc_n chap._n 2._o and_o s._n paul_n rom._n 1._o affirm_v that_o the_o just_a do_v live_v by_o faith_n the_o apostle_n also_o 1._o cor._n 1._o say_v that_o our_o saour_n christ_n be_v make_v wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n unto_o us._n which_o if_o it_o be_v wrought_v by_o our_o work_n than_o shall_v we_o have_v be_v make_v wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n unto_o ourselves_o nay_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 3._o say_v if_o abraham_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n that_o then_o he_o have_v wherein_o to_o rejoice_v but_o not_o with_o god_n popish_a religion_n consist_v most_o in_o external_a ceremony_n as_o for_o example_n in_o salt_n holy_a water_n holy_a candle_n incense_n ring_v of_o sacring_a bell_n adore_v cross_n and_o image_n grease_v of_o sick_a man_n and_o masspriest_n shave_v of_o crown_n vow_n monkish_a rule_n and_o such_o like_a toy_n but_o these_o foolery_n be_v never_o know_v either_o to_o the_o apostle_n or_o prophet_n nay_o our_o saviour_n matth._n 15._o teach_v that_o in_o vain_a they_o seek_v to_o worship_n god_n that_o teach_v for_o doctrine_n the_o precept_n of_o man_n he_o show_v also_o john_n 4._o that_o true_a worshipper_n worship_n god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n and_o the_o apostle_n coloss_n 2._o condemn_v such_o as_o put_v religion_n in_o touch_v fast_v and_o such_o like_a vain_a ceremony_n the_o masspriest_n call_v the_o pope_n the_o spouse_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o he_o mean_v to_o derive_v his_o authority_n from_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o
contulit_fw-la say_v the_o author_n of_o that_o donation_n ut_fw-la in_o toto_fw-la orbe_fw-la romani_fw-la pontifices_fw-la vel●saecendotes_n ita_fw-la hun●_n caput_fw-la habeant_fw-la sicut_fw-la iudices_fw-la regem_fw-la so_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o preeminence_n of_o roman_a bishop_n over_o all_o priest_n proceed_v from_o the_o emperor_n grant_n and_o not_o from_o any_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n or_o divine_a authority_n likewise_o we_o read_v that_o the_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n be_v call_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o emperor_n and_o that_o their_o act_n and_o decree_n be_v ratify_v by_o they_o and_o not_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n more_o than_o other_o bishop_n as_o be_v pretend_v further_o in_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n publish_v by_o those_o counsel_n and_o receive_v by_o theodosius_n martian●●s_n and_o other_o christian_a emperor_n there_o be_v not_o one_o article_n of_o popery_n so_o much_o as_o mention_v nay_o albeit_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n oppugn_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n concern_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n yet_o prevail_v they_o not_o last_o the_o condemnation_n of_o eutyches_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n do_v overthrow_v the_o popish_a real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o transubstantiation_n for_o if_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a body_n that_o be_v circumscriptible_a &_o solid_a then_o be_v not_o christ_n body_n real_o in_o every_o consecrate_a host_n and_o if_o that_o according_a as_o after_o the_o union_n of_o the_o nature_n both_o remain_v so_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v after_o consecration_n as_o the_o father_n of_o that_o council_n pretend_v then_o away_o fly_v the_o fancy_n of_o popish_a transubstantiation_n recaredus_n king_n of_o spain_n assemble_v the_o three_o council_n of_o toledo_n chase_v arianisme_n out_o of_o his_o dominion_n publish_v a_o confession_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o all_o christian_a bishop_n of_o that_o country_n receive_v and_o govern_v and_o confirm_v the_o council_n publico_fw-la regis_fw-la edicto_fw-la confirmatum_fw-la est_fw-la concilium_fw-la the_o council_n be_v confirm_v by_o public_a proclamation_n of_o the_o king_n say_v the_o compiler_n of_o the_o act_n of_o that_o council_n final_o in_o all_o the_o act_n there_o be_v not_o one_o article_n of_o popery_n confirm_v but_o the_o 21._o canon_n that_o allow_v psalm_n to_o be_v sing_v at_o burial_n do_v utter_o overthrow_v dirge_n and_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n for_o how_o can_v they_o choose_v but_o sorrow_n for_o the_o dead_a that_o believe_v their_o friend_n soul_n to_o be_v in_o purgatory_n the_o 22._o canon_n forbid_v dance_n and_o immodest_a song_n on_o holy_a day_n the_o 16._o canon_n be_v direct_v against_o the_o worship_n of_o idol_n the_o 11._o canon_n reprove_v priest_n that_o absolve_v public_a sinner_n without_o due_a act_n of_o repentance_n which_o be_v a_o abuse_n very_o common_a in_o the_o masspriest_n final_o in_o this_o synod_n the_o spaniard_n follow_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o not_o of_o rome_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o second_o canon_n justinian_n the_o emperor_n as_o be_v report_v in_o the_o law_n inter_fw-la claras_fw-la cod._n de_fw-fr sum_n trin._n publish_v a_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o he_o command_v to_o be_v receive_v throughout_o his_o dominion_n but_o therein_o be_v not_o any_o article_n of_o popery_n mention_v nay_o diverse_a of_o his_o law_n concern_v the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n the_o order_n of_o church_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n declare_v that_o unto_o his_o time_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n belong_v to_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o that_o yet_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o usurp_v his_o general_a authority_n nor_o exclude_v temporal_a prince_n he_o decree_v that_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v administer_v contrary_a to_o the_o popish_a form_n in_o a_o audible_a voice_n and_o in_o atongue_n that_o may_v be_v understand_v gregory_n the_o first_o acknowledge_v himself_o subject_a to_o the_o emperor_n and_o willing_a to_o execute_v his_o commandment_n which_o show_v that_o the_o emperor_n as_o yet_o hold_v his_o authority_n and_o will_v not_o yield_v it_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n his_o faith_n also_o be_v the_o same_o which_o other_o emperor_n profess_v for_o as_o yet_o antichrist_n have_v not_o gain_v the_o primacy_n gregory_n himself_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o serenus_n of_o massilia_n praise_v he_o for_o that_o he_o suffer_v not_o image_n to_o be_v adore_v and_o no_o man_n need_v to_o doubt_v but_o that_o maurice_n the_o emperor_n concur_v with_o he_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n leo_fw-la the_o four_o in_o the_o chapter_n de_fw-fr capitulis_fw-la do_v 11._o profess_v that_o he_o will_v see_v the_o emperor_n order_n by_o all_o mean_v keep_v de_fw-fr capitulis_fw-la vel_fw-la praeceptis_fw-la imperialibus_fw-la vestris_fw-la etc._n etc._n irrefragabiliter_fw-la custodiendis_fw-la say_v he_o quantum_fw-la valuimus_fw-la &_o valemus_fw-la christ_n propitio_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la &_o in_fw-la aewm_fw-la nos_fw-la conseruaturos_fw-la modis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la profitemur_fw-la this_o therefore_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o the_o christian_n faith_n as_o yet_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n &_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v then_o make_v no_o alteration_n by_o their_o decretales_fw-la as_o not_o have_v as_o yet_o settle_v their_o supreme_a and_o tyrannical_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o leo_n neither_o be_v transubstantiation_n nor_o the_o necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n in_o the_o priest_n ear_n for_o all_o sin_n nor_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n hear_v of_o beda_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n praise_v king_n ceolulphus_n for_o that_o he_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n diligent_o but_o now_o among_o papist_n lay-man_n be_v not_o commend_v for_o hear_v scripture_n at_o that_o time_n neither_o be_v the_o 7._o sacrament_n confirm_v nor_o the_o pope_n doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n and_o indulgence_n once_o deliver_v irene_n though_o a_o semipagan_a empress_n and_o a_o worshipper_n of_o image_n yet_o do_v not_o give_v divine_a worship_n to_o the_o crucifix_n or_o image_n of_o the_o trinity_n charles_n the_o great_a in_o a_o synod_n at_o francford_n condemn_v the_o idolatrous_a decree_n of_o the_o 2._o nicene_n synod_n assemble_v under_o irene_n ansegisus_fw-la lib._n 2._o c._n 19_o show_v that_o he_o decree_v that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n beside_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o same_o author_n report_v diverse_a law_n make_v by_o he_o and_o his_o son_n ludovic_n contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o modern_a romish_a church_n kellison_n therefore_o shall_v work_v a_o wonder_n if_o he_o can_v prove_v that_o either_o of_o these_o emperor_n believe_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v both_o the_o sword_n and_o rule_v both_o on_o earth_n and_o in_o purgatory_n neither_o shall_v he_o be_v able_a to_o show_v that_o they_o believe_v that_o public_a service_n and_o sacrament_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v in_o a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v or_o that_o those_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n that_o neither_o preach_v nor_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n before_o the_o conventicle_n of_o laterane_n christian_n king_n and_o prince_n know_v now_o what_o transubstantiation_n mean_v neither_o do_v they_o receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n before_o the_o synod_n at_o constance_n in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o florence_n under_o eugenue_n the_o 4._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n of_o purgatory_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n begin_v to_o be_v in_o more_o reputution_n the_o rest_n of_o their_o heresy_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n can_v not_o procure_v to_o be_v authorize_v before_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n and_o yet_o the_o french_a refuse_v to_o admit_v the_o act_n of_o that_o conventicle_n and_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o five_o by_o his_o agent_n protest_v against_o they_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n king_n of_o denmark_n prince_n of_o germany_n and_o many_o other_o state_n resolute_o reject_v and_o contemn_v they_o so_o we_o see_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v neuer_o receive_v by_o many_o christian_a prince_n especial_o this_o form_n of_o doctrine_n that_o be_v prescribe_v by_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n the_o pope_n excommunication_n provision_n rapine_n violence_n and_o tyranny_n we_o find_v to_o have_v be_v of_o most_o christian_a king_n resist_v when_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n begin_v to_o lift_v up_o their_o heel_n against_o the_o eastern_a emperor_n leo_n isauricus_n and_o other_o and_o to_o excommunicate_v they_o they_o neglect_v their_o censure_n and_o in_o the_o eastern_a part_n be_v obey_v as_o before_o henry_n the_o 4._o emperor_n of_o rome_n
bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o else_o he_o must_v know_v that_o whatsoever_o he_o fable_v of_o his_o three_o suppose_a conversion_n the_o same_o will_v make_v for_o the_o destruction_n of_o popery_n and_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o cause_n which_o he_o maintain_v second_o we_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o all_o these_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n superstitious_a devise_n impiety_n &_o blasphemy_n which_o we_o refuse_v have_v be_v receive_v and_o establish_v in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n not_o only_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o also_o since_o the_o time_n of_o eleutherius_fw-la and_o gregory_n the_o first_o the_o idolatrous_a worship_n of_o image_n be_v first_o confirm_v by_o the_o second_o counncell_n of_o nice_a under_o the_o empire_n of_o irene_n and_o by_o little_a and_o little_o bring_v into_o the_o western_a church_n be_v long_o oppugn_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n germany_n and_o britain_n that_o the_o image_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o trinity_n shall_v be_v worship_v with_o latria_fw-la be_v not_o allow_v in_o that_o idolatrous_a council_n but_o first_o teach_v by_o thomas_n aquinas_n and_o his_o follower_n and_o ground_v not_o upon_o god_n word_n but_o upon_o this_o rule_n of_o philosophy_n that_o the_o same_o motion_n be_v direct_v to_o the_o image_n and_o the_o thing_n imagine_v which_o rule_n by_o he_o be_v mistake_v be_v mean_v of_o the_o species_n or_o representation_n of_o thing_n in_o our_o understanding_n and_o not_o of_o material_a image_n that_o come_v not_o within_o our_o understanding_n the_o pope_n authority_n begin_v to_o be_v establish_v first_o by_o the_o rebellion_n of_o gregory_n the_o second_o and_z gregory_z the_o three_o that_o cause_v italy_n to_o revolt_v from_o the_o emperor_n under_o pretence_n of_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o afterward_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v by_o gregory_n the_o seven_o and_o his_o successor_n that_o by_o force_n and_o violence_n overthrow_v the_o empire_n and_o make_v way_n by_o the_o divisious_a of_o christendom_n to_o the_o victory_n and_o conquest_n of_o the_o turk_n and_o saracen_n boniface_n the_o three_o obtain_v of_o phocas_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v repute_v head_n of_o other_o church_n boniface_n the_o 9_o as_o theodoric_n à_fw-fr niem_fw-la in_o his_o book_n of_o schism_n testify_v by_o fraud_n usurp_v first_o the_o temporal_a government_n over_o the_o city_n and_o territory_n of_o rome_n which_o before_o that_o belong_v either_o to_o the_o emperor_n or_o to_o the_o citizen_n and_o thus_o by_o fraud_n and_o violence_n the_o pope_n make_v himself_o great_a and_o by_o little_a and_o little_o exalt_v himself_o in_o the_o church_n and_o erect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n the_o carnal_a eat_n and_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v first_o decree_v by_o nicolas_n the_o second_o in_o the_o chap._n ego_fw-la berengarius_fw-la do_v 2._o the_o consecrat_fw-mi for_o there_o we_o read_v first_o that_o christ_n true_a body_n be_v handle_v with_o the_o hand_n of_o priest_n break_a and_o tear_v with_o the_o tooth_n of_o the_o faithful_a his_o word_n prescribe_v to_o berengarius_fw-la be_v verum_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesu_fw-la christi_fw-la esse_fw-la &_o sensualiter_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o veritate_fw-la manibus_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la tractari_fw-la frangi_fw-la &_o fidelium_fw-la dentibus_fw-la atteri_fw-la transubstantiation_n get_v reputation_n first_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o innocent_a the_o 3._o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o chapter_n firmiter_fw-la de_fw-fr sum_n trin._n &_o fid_fw-we cath_z for_o there_o he_o decree_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v transubstantiate_a into_o the_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o blood_n by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n but_o yet_o two_o inconvenience_n will_v here_o fall_v out_o if_o we_o yield_v to_o his_o word_n for_o there_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v both_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o that_o this_o transubstantiation_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n whereof_o the_o first_o overthrow_v the_o priesthood_n of_o the_o polshorne_a priest_n of_o baal_n the_o second_o do_v take_v away_o the_o efficacy_n from_o these_o word_n hoc_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la and_o hic_fw-la est_fw-la sanguis_fw-la meus_fw-la and_o ascribe_v all_o to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n absolute_o in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o constance_n we_o find_v it_o first_o resolve_v that_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v remain_v without_o subject_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n immediate_a vicar_n and_o sess_v 13._o that_n although_o christ_n do_v institute_v the_o eucharist_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n yet_o lay-man_n be_v only_o to_o receine_v it_o under_o one_o kind_n auricular_a confession_n be_v establish_v by_o innocent_a the_o 3._o in_o the_o chap._n omnis_fw-la utriusque_fw-la sexus_fw-la de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la &_o remiss_a for_o before_o that_o it_o be_v free_a to_o confess_v or_o not_o to_o confess_v the_o doctrine_n of_o confession_n be_v enlarge_v by_o the_o canoniste_n and_o schoolman_n in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o florence_n we_o read_v that_o the_o form_n of_o order_v masseprieste_n of_o popish_a confirmation_n and_o extreme_a unction_n and_o of_o other_o popish_a sacrament_n be_v then_o first_o settle_v by_o law_n there_o also_o purgatory_n and_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v first_o enact_v by_o force_n of_o law_n clement_n the_o 6._o in_o the_o chapter_n unigenitus_fw-la extr_n de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la &_o remis_fw-la do_v first_o devise_v the_o treasure_n of_o indulgence_n boniface_n the_o 8._o and_o sixtus_n the_o 4._o order_a the_o popish_a jubiley_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o council_n it_o be_v first_o decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n under_o leo_n the_o 10._o who_o also_o begin_v first_o to_o thunder_n out_o his_o excommunication_n against_o m._n luther_n final_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n give_v final_a complement_n to_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n of_o tradition_n of_o the_o latin_a vulgar_a translation_n of_o concupiscence_n of_o formal_a justification_n by_o charity_n and_o work_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n of_o purgatory_n and_o indulgence_n of_o frame_v the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o heresy_n and_o abuse_n for_o what_o before_o the_o schoolman_n have_v teach_v vain_o that_o begin_v now_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n to_o be_v establish_v and_o hold_v for_o law_n then_o also_o the_o missal_n breviaries_n office_n and_o other_o ritual_a book_n begin_v to_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n authority_n three_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o of_o the_o time_n wherein_o joseph_n of_o arimathaea_n eleutherius_fw-la and_o gregory_n the_o first_o live_v be_v direct_v contrary_a in_o diverse_a point_n to_o popish_a religion_n s._n peter_n 1._o ep_v 2._o exhort_v all_o christian_n to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o king_n and_o governor_n but_o the_o pope_n command_v subject_n to_o rebel_n and_o take_v arm_n against_o prince_n and_o excommunicate_v such_o as_o refuse_v so_o to_o do_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o excommunication_n of_o paul_n the_o 3._o against_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o and_o of_o pius_n the_o five_o against_o queen_n elizabeth_n both_o which_o be_v extant_a in_o sanders_n his_o libel_n de_fw-fr schismate_fw-la s._n peter_n 1._o ep_v 1._o will_v have_v christian_n to_o trust_v perfect_o on_o god_n grace_n the_o papist_n teach_v their_o disciple_n to_o distrust_v god_n grace_n and_o to_o doubt_v of_o their_o salvation_n and_o to_o trust_v rather_o in_o their_o own_o work_n and_o merit_n he_o say_v we_o be_v not_o redeem_v with_o corruptible_a thing_n but_o with_o christ_n most_o precious_a blood_n these_o teach_v that_o man_n be_v redeem_v after_o a_o sort_n by_o indulgence_n and_o by_o the_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n of_o saint_n to_o who_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o book_n of_o indulgence_n doubt_v not_o to_o give_v the_o title_n of_o redeemer_n s._n peter_n exhort_v christian_n to_o desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o god_n word_n that_o they_o may_v grow_v thereby_o the_o papist_n bar_v man_n from_o hear_v god_n word_n in_o tongue_n which_o they_o understand_v and_o send_v they_o to_o believe_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o impure_a trash_n of_o the_o schoolman_n and_o the_o pope_n decretales_fw-la he_o exclude_v the_o lordship_n of_o pope_n over_o god_n inheritance_n these_o false_a teacher_n enforce_v it_o he_o exhort_v we_o to_o make_v our_o election_n sure_a these_o fellow_n teach_v that_o christian_n can_v be_v assure_v of_o their_o election_n or_o make_v it_o sure_o joseph_n of_o arimathaea_n and_o the_o godly_a bishop_n that_o live_v in_o his_o time_n and_o diverse_a hundred_o year_n after_o he_o continued_z we_o doubt_v not_o in_o
of_o her_o image_n there_o to_o be_v idolatrous_a 14._o they_o celebrate_v the_o feast_n of_o our_o lady_n conception_n and_o of_o the_o assumption_n of_o her_o body_n into_o heaven_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o missal_n and_o breviaries_n but_o catholic_n drslike_v both_o as_o ground_v upon_o apocryphal_a fable_n and_o lie_v legend_n s._n bernard_n epist_n 174._o speak_v against_o the_o feast_n of_o her_o conception_n say_v she_o need_v no_o false_a honour_n 15._o catholic_n never_o believe_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o body_n invisible_a impalpable_a and_o not_o comprehend_v in_o a_o place_n s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr essentia_fw-la divinitatis_fw-la say_v that_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v visible_a corporal_a and_o local_a but_o our_o adversary_n teach_v that_o his_o true_a body_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n where_o it_o be_v neither_o see_v feel_v nor_o circumscribe_v in_o a_o place_n 16._o they_o speak_v reverentlie_o of_o christ_n body_n and_o hold_v it_o blasphemy_n to_o say_v that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v cast_v into_o the_o fire_n or_o eat_v of_o dog_n or_o hog_n or_o other_o brute_n beast_n but_o the_o papist_n do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o go_v about_o to_o clear_v themselves_o of_o this_o blasphemy_n 17_o they_o teach_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o body_n like_a to_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n sin_n except_o the_o papist_n believe_v that_o his_o body_n be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o contain_v in_o the_o compass_n of_o a_o consecrate_a host_n and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v invisible_a and_o able_a to_o penetrate_v other_o solid_a body_n without_o the_o dissolution_n of_o their_o substance_n but_o such_o abodie_o no_o man_n ever_o yet_o have_v nor_o by_o nature_n can_v have_v 18_o they_o believe_v that_o every_o body_n be_v continue_v to_o itself_o or_o as_o logician_n call_v it_o continua_fw-la quanutas_fw-la but_o papist_n believe_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o every_o altar_n and_o yet_o not_o in_o the_o middle_a place_n whereby_o it_o follow_v that_o christ_n head_n in_o heaven_n be_v not_o continue_v to_o his_o foot_n be_v in_o a_o consecrate_a host_n in_o earth_n 19_o vigilius_n lib._n 4._o cont_n eutych_n say_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v now_o in_o heaven_n be_v not_o on_o earth_n and_o that_o be_v the_o faith_n of_o catholic_n but_o the_o false_a and_o pretend_a catholic_n believe_v that_o his_o body_n be_v both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o diverse_a distant_a place_n at_o one_o time_n 20._o catholic_n believe_v that_o christ_n only_o be_v our_o redeemer_n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o rom._n 3.1_o cor._n 1._o and_o diverse_a other_o place_n but_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o first_o book_n of_o indulgence_n teach_v we_o that_o saint_n and_o other_o may_v be_v call_v redeemer_n all_o his_o consort_n also_o teach_v that_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o indulgence_n redeem_v soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n 21._o catholic_n acknowledge_v that_o christ_n be_v our_o justice_n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 1._o express_o say_v they_o believe_v also_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n in_o he_o as_o we_o read_v rom._n 5._o but_o kellison_n in_o his_o survey_n and_o his_o consort_n teach_v that_o he_o be_v only_o the_o meritorious_a cause_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o that_o we_o be_v formal_o justify_v and_o save_v by_o our_o own_o work_n 22._o catholic_n doubt_v not_o to_o make_v their_o election_n sure_a and_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n have_v peace_n with_o god_n and_o be_v persuade_v that_o nothing_o shall_v separate_v they_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n for_o all_o this_o be_v apostolic_a doctrine_n but_o papist_n teach_v their_o follower_n to_o doubt_v of_o their_o election_n and_o of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n towards_o they_o and_o deprive_v they_o both_o of_o peace_n of_o conscience_n and_o of_o all_o assurance_n of_o god_n grace_n 23._o catholic_n believe_v that_o christ_n be_v wound_v for_o our_o transgression_n and_o that_o he_o have_v bear_v our_o infirmity_n and_o that_o by_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v for_o so_o the_o prophet_n isay_n cap._n 53._o teach_v us._n but_o the_o pretend_a popish_a catholic_n do_v lash_v themselves_o and_o hope_v by_o their_o own_o stripe_n to_o heal_v their_o sin_n and_o to_o satisfy_v for_o they_o and_o without_o this_o satisfaction_n they_o believe_v that_o no_o man_n can_v obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n 24._o catholic_n ever_o spare_v their_o own_o body_n but_o certain_a heretic_n and_o idolater_n do_v usual_o afflict_v their_o body_n and_o lash_n themselves_o before_o their_o idol_n in_o lash_v of_o themselves_o therefore_o the_o papist_n imitate_v the_o priest_n of_o baal_n and_o not_o true_a catholic_n 25._o catholic_n believe_v that_o their_o sin_n be_v purge_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o we_o read_v hebr._n 1._o but_o papist_n believe_v that_o their_o sin_n be_v purge_v in_o purgatory_n and_o by_o their_o own_o satsifaction_n 26._o the_o greek_n to_o this_o day_n never_o believe_v purgatory_n neither_o do_v any_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n believe_v that_o after_o our_o sin_n be_v remit_v christian_n be_v to_o satisfy_v for_o temporal_a pain_n either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o purgatory_n the_o doctrine_n therefore_o of_o purgatory_n will_v never_o be_v prove_v catholic_a 27._o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a father_n never_o know_v nor_o hear_v of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o treasure_n of_o the_o pope_n indulgence_n this_o doctrine_n of_o papist_n therefore_o be_v to_o be_v abolish_v as_o not_o catholic_a 28._o true_a catholic_n never_o believe_v that_o christian_n be_v justify_v by_o marriage_n the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n say_v it_o be_v only_o a_o remedy_n against_o sin_n but_o papist_n hold_v they_o be_v justify_v by_o marriage_n aswell_o as_o by_o other_o sacrament_n 29._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o conventicle_n of_o florence_n concern_v the_o form_n of_o priesthood_n popish_a confirmation_n extreme_a unction_n and_o their_o number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v catholic_a 3._o bellarmine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la effectu_fw-la sacrament_n c._n 3._o and_o other_o his_o consort_n affirm_v that_o christian_n be_v instify_v by_o the_o sacrament_n ex_fw-la opere_fw-la operato_fw-la or_o by_o their_o own_o act_n and_o work_v wrought_v whereby_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v justify_v by_o grease_v cross_v and_o such_o like_a act_n but_o this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o catholic_a the_o greek_n to_o this_o day_n acknowledge_v no_o such_o doctrine_n nor_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v find_v in_o ancient_a writer_n 31._o the_o greek_n to_o this_o day_n renounce_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n the_o ancient_a father_n never_o hear_v of_o a_o triple_a crown_a pope_n with_o a_o cross_a slipper_n and_o a_o guard_n of_o suitzer_n the_o doctrine_n therefore_o of_o the_o pope_n general_a vicarship_n teach_v by_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o book_n the_o pontisice_n rom._n and_o by_o other_o be_v not_o catholic_a 32._o papist_n teach_v that_o some_o sin_n be_v do_v away_o by_o holy_a water_n and_o without_o repentance_n and_o that_o such_o sin_n deserve_v not_o death_n but_o the_o apostle_n galat._n 3_o show_v he_o to_o be_v accurse_v that_o abide_v not_o in_o all_o the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n to_o do_v they_o and_o rom._n 6._o say_v that_o the_o wage_n of_o sin_n be_v death_n this_o be_v also_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o catholic_n but_o of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o holy_a water_n to_o do_v away_o sin_n true_a catholic_n say_v nothing_o 33._o papist_n offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n pro_fw-la redemptione_n animarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la for_o the_o redemption_n of_o their_o soul_n but_o catholic_n do_v not_o hope_v for_o redemption_n but_o by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n once_o offer_v upon_o the_o cross_n 34._o they_o make_v christian_n eater_n of_o man_n flesh_n and_o drinker_n of_o man_n blood_n real_o and_o literal_o as_o their_o word_n in_o the_o chapter_n ego_fw-la berengarius_fw-la do_v 2._o the_o consecrat_fw-mi do_v import_n but_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o the_o spirit_n quicken_v and_o saint_n augustine_n tract_n 25._o in_o loan_n show_v that_o christ_n flesh_n be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v with_o our_o mouth_n or_o tooth_n ut_fw-la quid_fw-la paras_fw-la dentem_fw-la say_v he_o why_o do_v thou_o prepare_v thy_o tooth_n 35._o they_o make_v their_o priest_n creator_n of_o their_o creator_n as_o innocentius_n in_o his_o book_n the_o myster_n missae_fw-la stella_fw-la clericorum_fw-la and_o boner_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o priest_n in_o queen_n mary_n time_n in_o express_a word_n do_v declare_v but_o christian_n and_o catholic_n abhor_v to_o hear_v priest_n call_v creator_n or_o god_n to_o be_v make_v a_o creature_n 36._o they_o make_v the_o priest_n to_o intercede_v for_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n say_v supra_fw-la quae_fw-la propitio_fw-la
the_o pope_n law_n as_o the_o resistance_n of_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n against_o victor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n against_o sozimus_n and_o other_o pope_n declare_v 20._o of_o late_a time_n friar_n especial_o the_o capucin_n have_v attire_v themselves_o like_o chimney_n sweeper_n &_o burner_n of_o house_n 21._o the_o rule_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n be_v diverse_a from_o the_o rule_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o can_v not_o be_v elder_a than_o the_o order_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n 22._o gregory_n the_o seven_o as_o otho_n frisingensis_n say_v be_v the_o first_o that_o do_v excommunicate_v the_o emperor_n and_o teach_v that_o he_o have_v power_n to_o assoil_v subject_n from_o the_o other_o of_o obedience_n to_o prince_n 23._o the_o use_n of_o private_a mass_n without_o communion_n be_v but_o new_a as_o the_o old_a ordinall_n of_o rome_n that_o have_v no_o mass_n of_o that_o nature_n declare_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n forbid_v christian_n to_o depart_v before_o they_o receive_v the_o communion_n 24._o innocent_n the_o three_o in_o the_o chap._n omnis_fw-la utriusque_fw-la de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la &_o remiss_a do_v first_o bring_v in_o a_o necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n he_o also_o be_v the_o first_o father_n of_o the_o monster_n transubstantiation_n as_o we_o find_v by_o the_o chapter_n firmiter_fw-la de_fw-fr sum_n trinit_fw-la &_o fid_fw-we cathol_n 25._o purgatory_n for_o satisfaction_n for_o temporal_a pain_n of_o sin_n who_o guilt_n before_o be_v remit_v be_v first_o devise_v by_o schoolman_n 26._o the_o jubiley_n among_o christian_n be_v first_o devise_v by_o boniface_n the_o eigth_n he_o also_o decree_v first_o that_o all_o temporal_a prince_n and_o other_o upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n 27._o popish_a indulgence_n be_v but_o of_o a_o late_a stamp_n and_o the_o school_n doctrine_n thereof_o much_o latter_a the_o papist_n themselves_o be_v as_o yet_o not_o full_o resolve_v what_o to_o think_v of_o they_o 28._o clement_n the_o six_o first_o devise_v the_o treasure_n out_o of_o which_o indulgence_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v grant_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o chap._n unigenitus_fw-la extr_n depoenit_fw-la &_o remiss_a 29._o the_o doctrine_n of_o case_n reserve_v to_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o once_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n and_o yet_o the_o masspriest_n make_v a_o great_a matter_n of_o they_o 30._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n penitentiary_n tax_v for_o dispatch_v of_o pardon_n for_o murder_n incest_n sodomy_n and_o all_o villainy_n i_o think_v kellison_n will_v not_o contend_v to_o be_v very_o ancient_a 31._o bellarmine_n doctrine_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr verb._n dei_fw-la c._n 3._o concern_v the_o new_a testament_n where_o he_o say_v it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o love_n of_o god_n shed_v into_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v new_a for_o it_o contradict_v chrysostome_n theodoret_n and_o other_o in_o 2._o cor._n 3._o who_o teach_v that_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v god_n grace_n remit_v sin_n 32._o the_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n between_o spiritual_a gossip_n be_v a_o late_a device_n of_o the_o pope_n for_o gain_v 33._o the_o separation_n of_o marry_a couple_n for_o religion_n before_o consummation_n of_o marriage_n without_o consent_n of_o both_o the_o party_n be_v both_o new_a and_o wicked_a 34._o the_o popish_a ceremony_n use_v in_o baptism_n be_v of_o a_o late_a invention_n as_o for_o example_n salt_n spittle_n candle_n and_o popish_a exorcism_n 35._o of_o late_o they_o have_v begin_v to_o exorcise_v salt_n in_o salutem_fw-la credentium_fw-la for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o holy_a water_n to_o cast_v our_o devil_n and_o to_o drive_v away_o discase_n these_o consuration_n be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o old_a romish_a ordinal_n 36._o the_o masseppriest_n have_v now_o get_v a_o new_a trick_n to_o sprinkle_v the_o altar_n with_o holy_a water_n and_o to_o say_v thou_o shall_v sprinkle_v i_o with_o hyssop_n and_o i_o shall_v be_v cleanse_v apply_v the_o scripture_n contrary_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 37._o honorius_n the_o three_o in_o the_o chapter_n sane_fw-la cum_fw-la olim_fw-la de_fw-fr celebr_fw-fr miss_v do_v first_o ordain_v that_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v worship_v and_o safe_o keep_v and_o carry_v with_o light_n to_o those_o that_o be_v sick_a 38._o half_n communion_n be_v direct_v contrary_a to_o christ_n institution_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o first_o establish_v in_o the_o conventicle_n of_o constance_n 39_o the_o mass_n can_v be_v old_a for_o that_o nauclerus_fw-la platina_n polydore_n and_o other_o confess_v be_v be_v innent_v by_o diverse_a author_n long_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n 40._o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a now_o find_v in_o the_o mass_n be_v not_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o book_n call_v ordo_fw-la romanus_n 41._o in_o old_a time_n the_o father_n never_o believe_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o body_n invisible_a and_o incircumscriptible_a and_o that_o may_v be_v in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o many_o place_n at_o one_o time_n 42._o the_o godly_a bishop_n of_o old_a time_n do_v neither_o swinge_n the_o chalice_n about_o their_o head_n nor_o make_v cross_n about_o it_o when_o they_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n 43._o the_o say_n of_o service_n and_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n in_o tongue_n not_o understand_v be_v a_o foolish_a novelty_n 44._o now_o in_o the_o roman_a catechism_n they_o teach_v that_o every_o mass-priest_n consecrate_v work_v three_o miracle_n but_o in_o old_a time_n they_o be_v never_o take_v for_o such_o worker_n of_o miracle_n 45._o the_o papist_n after_o their_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la say_v their_o ave_fw-la maria_n and_o pray_v to_o our_o lady_n which_o practice_n be_v neither_o ancient_a nor_o apostolical_a 46._o the_o psalter_n of_o our_o lady_n and_o her_o peculiar_a office_n and_o mass_n in_o honour_n of_o saint_n will_v not_o be_v justify_v by_o ancient_a precedent_n 47._o hardly_o will_v the_o papist_n bring_v a_o precedent_n of_o 300._o year_n old_a to_o prove_v that_o christian_n pray_v to_o the_o cross_n for_o increase_v of_o justice_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n 48._o in_o the_o missal_n of_o sarum_n the_o priest_n say_v to_o the_o sacrament_n have_v or_o hail_n and_o bow_v to_o it_o contrary_a to_o all_o ancient_a practice_n 49._o the_o worship_n of_o papist_n must_v needs_o be_v new_a for_o that_o both_o their_o saint_n be_v new_a and_o their_o prayer_n and_o office_n new_a 50._o the_o missal_n breviaries_n and_o office_n of_o our_o lady_n have_v their_o antiquity_n from_o the_o conventicle_n of_o trent_n 51._o popish_a idolater_n worship_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o cross_n with_o divine_a honour_n but_o they_o shall_v never_o bring_v allowance_n of_o antiquity_n for_o this_o practice_n 52._o they_o burn_v also_o incense_v to_o dumb_a image_n kiss_v they_o and_o bow_v to_o they_o but_o these_o unchristian_a trick_n be_v not_o know_v in_o old_a time_n 53._o of_o late_a time_n they_o have_v decree_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o the_o council_n but_o it_o be_v since_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n 54._o now_o the_o pope_n pretend_v right_a to_o handle_v the_o temporal_a sword_n but_o that_o do_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n 55._o of_o late_a time_n the_o pope_n have_v tread_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o emperor_n but_o in_o ancient_a time_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v subject_a to_o emperor_n 56._o in_o time_n past_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v persecute_v and_o martyr_v now_o the_o pope_n of_o late_a time_n persecute_v and_o martyr_v other_o final_o all_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n differ_v from_o the_o faith_n o_o this_o church_n which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o complice_n seek_v now_o to_o thrust_v upon_o christian_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n novelty_n and_o this_o do_v clear_o appear_v in_o this_o for_o that_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n as_o before_o have_v be_v particular_o declare_v the_o same_o be_v also_o coutrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n and_o ancient_a church_n practice_v as_o we_o shall_v declare_v hereafter_o further_o the_o papist_n have_v turn_v the_o whole_a service_n of_o god_n into_o a_o mass_a mommery_n final_o for_o god_n they_o worship_v saint_n and_o dumb_a image_n the_o institution_n of_o christ_n jesus_n in_o the_o eucharist_n they_o have_v alter_v new_a sacrament_n they_o have_v devise_v be_v they_o not_o then_o ashamed_a to_o call_v popery_n ancient_a christian_a religion_n chap._n xvii_o that_o poperic_n be_v repugnant_a to_o ancient_a counsel_n much_o doc_fw-fr papist_n brag_v of_o counsel_n campion_n say_v the_o first_o last_o and_o midst_n be_v he_o concilia_fw-la generalia_fw-la mea_fw-la sunt_fw-la general_a counsel_n say_v he_o be_v all_o for_o i_o
wolvish_a inquisitor_n before_o have_v condemn_v final_o they_o take_v from_o prince_n all_o command_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n not_o suffer_v they_o either_o to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n or_o to_o meddle_v with_o ecclesiastical_a person_n as_o for_o other_o christian_n they_o do_v excommunicate_v they_o curse_v they_o burn_v they_o massacre_v they_o and_o set_v they_o together_o by_o the_o ear_n that_o one_o may_v tear_v another_o if_o they_o repugn_v against_o their_o commandment_n can_v we_o then_o esteem_v popery_n to_o be_v christian_a religion_n that_o hold_v christian_n in_o so_o base_a account_n and_o will_v christian_n endure_v this_o yoke_n of_o bondage_n put_v upon_o their_o neck_n by_o the_o pope_n faction_n that_o endevore_v to_o take_v all_o liberty_n from_o christian_n chap._n xxxii_o that_o popery_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n the_o devil_n be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o untruth_n and_o falsehood_n it_o may_v well_o be_v say_v that_o all_o the_o lie_a and_o false_a doctrine_n of_o papist_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n but_o beside_o this_o there_o be_v particular_a reason_n why_o we_o call_v popery_n the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n for_o first_o diverse_a point_n of_o popish_a doctrine_n be_v special_o say_v to_o proceed_v from_o the_o devil_n and_o next_o the_o best_a proof_n and_o mean_n which_o our_o adversary_n have_v to_o maintain_v their_o doctrine_n be_v from_o the_o devil_n the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n 4._o call_v the_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n and_o law_n of_o abstinence_n from_o certain_a meat_n doctrine_n of_o devil_n for_o speak_v of_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n afterward_o he_o specifi_v the_o same_o say_v forbid_v to_o marry_v and_o command_v to_o abstain_v from_o meat_n which_o god_n have_v create_v but_o papist_n by_o law_n express_o forbid_v marriage_n to_o priest_n and_o other_o that_o have_v vow_v single_a life_n and_o the_o eat_n of_o flesh_n on_o fast_a day_n and_o white_a soul_n in_o lent_n neither_o can_v they_o excuse_v themselves_o for_o that_o they_o do_v not_o condemn_v marriage_n as_o simple_o evil_a or_o flesh_n as_o unclean_a for_o thcodoret_n show_v that_o such_o come_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o apostle_n censure_n as_o by_o law_n prohibit_v these_o thing_n further_a neither_o do_v the_o encratite_n or_o manichees_n absolute_o forbid_v marriage_n as_o unclean_a but_o as_o not_o fit_v such_o as_o tend_v to_o perfection_n epiphanius_n in_o haeres_fw-la 79._o esteem_v the_o superstition_n of_o those_o woman_n that_o offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o a_o cake_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n to_o be_v diabolical_a totum_fw-la hoc_fw-la opus_fw-la est_fw-la diabolicum_fw-la &_o spiritus_fw-la immundi_fw-la doctrina_fw-la but_o papist_n do_v offer_v their_o mass_n cake_n in_o the_o honour_n of_o our_o lady_n and_o of_o saint_n likewise_o he_o call_v it_o a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n to_o give_v divine_a worship_n to_o dead_a man_n but_o this_o be_v a_o common_a practice_n among_o papist_n for_o by_o saint_n they_o swear_v and_o to_o they_o they_o confess_v their_o sin_n and_o in_o honour_n of_o they_o they_o build_v church_n and_o altar_n and_o say_v mass_n all_o which_o be_v special_a point_n of_o divine_a honour_n further_o he_o show_v that_o the_o desire_n that_o man_n have_v in_o make_v grave_v image_n be_v a_o devilish_a indevor_n simulachrificum_fw-la studium_fw-la diabolicus_fw-la conatus_fw-la but_o where_o be_v there_o more_o labour_v bestow_v in_o make_v image_n then_o in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o rome_n s._n chrysostome_n homil_n 9_o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la coloss_n say_v that_o the_o devil_n first_o bring_v in_o the_o superstitious_a worship_n of_o angel_n diabolus_fw-la superstitionem_fw-la angelorum_fw-la introduxit_fw-la here_o than_o we_o understand_v whence_o the_o papist_n have_v their_o worship_n of_o angel_n from_o the_o devil_n also_o have_v the_o pope_n learn_v to_o advance_v himself_o above_o all_o that_o be_v worship_v and_o to_o take_v upon_o he_o as_o if_o he_o be_v god_n apocalyps_n 9_o we_o read_v that_o the_o smoke_n that_o darken_v the_o sun_n and_o the_o air_n come_v out_o of_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n and_o that_o locust_n come_v out_o of_o this_o smoke_n but_o this_o smoke_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o fume_n of_o the_o error_n of_o popery_n which_o have_v long_o darken_v the_o brightness_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o locust_n be_v the_o monk_n and_o friar_n which_o with_o their_o poison_a doctrine_n draw_v from_o hell_n have_v infect_v the_o mind_n of_o simple_a people_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1256._o as_o matthew_n paris_n testify_v the_o friar_n publish_v a_o book_n entitle_v euangelium_fw-la aeternum_fw-la compose_v of_o certain_a dream_n of_o abbot_n joachim_n and_o this_o say_v they_o exceed_v the_o gospel_n write_v by_o the_o four_o evangelist_n as_o far_o as_o the_o sun_n the_o moon_n or_o the_o kernel_n the_o nut_n but_o the_o author_n of_o the_o romant_n of_o the_o rose_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o hypocrisy_n of_o friar_n testify_v that_o this_o book_n come_v from_o the_o great_a devil_n fut_o or_o bailler_fw-fr c'est_fw-mi choose_v voire_fw-fr say_v he_o pour_v bailler_n commun_v exemplaire_a vn_fw-fr liure_fw-fr de_fw-fr par_fw-fr le_fw-fr grand_fw-fr diable_fw-fr dit_fw-fr l'euangile_a perdurable_a that_o the_o pope_n have_v serve_v the_o devil_n it_o appear_v by_o john_n the_o 12._o that_o call_v upon_o the_o devil_n as_o he_o play_v at_o dice_n by_o sylvester_n the_o 2._o and_o benet_n the_o 9_o that_o be_v necromancer_n by_o gregory_n the_o 7._o that_o conq._n that_o matt._n paris_n in_o with._n conq._n confess_v at_o his_o death_n that_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o devil_n he_o have_v stir_v up_o god_n anger_n against_o the_o world_n and_o diverse_a other_o but_o serve_v the_o devil_n it_o be_v not_o likely_a but_o they_o learn_v somewhat_o of_o he_o delrius_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr magia_n c._n 1._o q._n 3._o §_o 5._o testify_v that_o the_o devil_n appear_v to_o a_o certain_a abbot_n in_o form_n of_o a_o angel_n and_o command_v he_o to_o say_v mass_n but_o he_o will_v not_o have_v persuade_v it_o unless_o he_o have_v well_o like_v it_o dibdale_n a_o mass-priest_n in_o england_n conjure_v the_o devil_n to_o tell_v he_o whether_o christ_n body_n be_v present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n or_o no._n he_o say_v it_o be_v and_o this_o be_v a_o great_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o papist_n present_v as_o be_v say_v in_o a_o book_n of_o miracle_n that_o pass_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n in_o the_o 2._o nicene_n council_n act_n 4._o a_o certain_a monk_n proon_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o devil_n i_o sengrenius_n in_o libro_fw-la de_fw-la maria_fw-la in_o veteri_fw-la ottinga_fw-mi proove_v that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v by_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o devil_n that_o say_v he_o have_v maria._n in_o the_o 2._o book_n of_o conformity_n fruct_v 2._o they_o make_v proof_n by_o the_o devil_n testimony_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o indulgence_n grant_v to_o the_o church_n of_o assisium_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o s._n francis_n likewise_o lib._n 3._o conformitatum_fw-la fruct_v 8._o a_o certain_a ●i●el_n tell_v one_o as_o be_v say_v how_o angel_n be_v present_a at_o the_o death_n of_o s._n francis_n daemon_n dixit_fw-la cuidam_fw-la angelos_fw-la interfuisse_fw-la in_o transitu_fw-la b._n francisci_fw-la another_o tell_v how_o s._n francis_n his_o soul_n pass_v through_o purgatory_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o another_o devil_n they_o prove_v that_o s._n francis_n have_v christ_n wound_n imprint_v in_o his_o body_n and_o that_o he_o and_o christ_n only_o of_o all_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n have_v these_o mark_n the_o word_n of_o the_o book_n of_o conformity_n be_v these_o diabolus_fw-la dixit_fw-la quod_fw-la christus_fw-la videns_fw-la quod_fw-la franciseus_n sibi_fw-la datus_fw-la esset_fw-la pro_fw-la signisero_fw-la tanti_fw-la ordmis_fw-la ipsi_fw-la suorum_fw-la unlncrum_fw-la stigmata_fw-la impressit_fw-la and_o again_o diabolus_fw-la adiuratus_fw-la à_fw-la quodam_fw-la sacerdote_fw-la de_fw-la veritate_fw-la dicenda_fw-la post_fw-la plura_fw-la per_fw-la os_fw-la mulieris_fw-la apud_fw-la ranennam_fw-la morantis_fw-la nomime_fw-la zantese_n sic_fw-la inquit_fw-la in_fw-la coelo_fw-la sunt_fw-la tantum_fw-la duo_fw-la signati_fw-la scilicet_fw-la christus_fw-la &_o slomachosus_fw-la franciscus_n baronius_n in_o his_o 4._o tome_fw-mi proove_v john_n and_o paul_n to_o be_v martyr_n by_o the_o devil_n testimony_n daemon_n clamantes_fw-la ex_fw-la corporibus_fw-la obsessorum_fw-la joannem_fw-la &_o paulum_fw-la martyr_n esse_fw-la testabantur_fw-la so_o here_o we_o see_v whence_o the_o papist_n have_v the_o worship_n of_o saint_n in_o the_o 77._o lombard_n legend_n it_o be_v say_v that_o dioclesian_n son_n be_v possess_v with_o a_o devil_n the_o same_o devil_n cry_v out_o that_o he_o will_v not_o dislodge_v before_o vitus_n come_v lo_o here_o a_o brave_a testimony_n of_o the_o holiness_n of_o s._n vitus_n final_o the_o
god_n worship_n and_o persecute_v their_o enemy_n like_o most_o cruel_a tyrant_n that_o afterward_o they_o may_v with_o more_o security_n satisfy_v their_o lust_n when_o there_o be_v none_o to_o control_v they_o joannes_n marius_n de_fw-fr schism_n part_n 3._o c._n 5._o testify_v that_o all_o the_o evil_n of_o christendom_n have_v proceed_v from_o the_o malice_n ambition_n and_o avarice_n of_o wicked_a pope_n a_o malitia_fw-la ambitione_n &_o avaritia_fw-la sceleratorum_fw-la paparum_fw-la omne_fw-la mala_fw-la in_o mundo_fw-la proveniunt_fw-la robert_n grosted_n as_o matthew_n paris_n testify_v in_o henrico_n 3_o do_v bitter_o inveigh_v against_o the_o covetousness_n usury_n simony_n rapine_n excess_n and_o luxuriousnesse_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n neither_o do_v budaeus_fw-la de_fw-la ass_n or_o valla_n contra_fw-la donationem_fw-la constantini_n say_v less_o against_o the_o pope_n than_o he_o next_o to_o the_o pope_n the_o cardinal_n masspriest_n monk_n and_o friar_n and_o of_o late_a year_n the_o dominican_n franciscan_n and_o jebusite_n be_v the_o chief_a advancer_n teacher_n and_o defender_n of_o romish_a heresy_n of_o which_o if_o we_o say_v little_a man_n may_v suppose_v there_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v say_v if_o we_o say_v what_o they_o deserve_v and_o be_v in_o authentical_a book_n report_v of_o they_o it_o will_v exceed_v the_o proportion_n of_o this_o short_a survey_v only_o thus_o much_o we_o say_v of_o many_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v say_v brigit_fw-la in_o her_o revelation_n testify_v that_o cardinal_n be_v excessive_a in_o pride_n covetousness_n &_o all_o delight_n of_o the_o flesh_n 4._o brig_n 49._o cardinal_n extenti_fw-la &_o effusi_fw-la sunt_fw-la ad_fw-la omnem_fw-la superbiam_fw-la cupiditatem_fw-la &_o delectamentum_fw-la carnis_fw-la pelaguis_fw-la lib._n 2._o the_o planct_v eccles_n art_n 16._o say_v they_o be_v increase_v in_o riches_n but_o much_o diminish_v in_o piety_n aucta_fw-la est_fw-la possessio_fw-la diminuta_fw-la religio_fw-la the_o same_o man_n lib._n 2._o the_o planct_v leccle_n art_n 20._o say_v the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n have_v declare_v their_o sin_n like_o sodom_n peccatum_fw-la suum_fw-la sicut_fw-la sodoma_fw-la praedicaverunt_fw-la mantuan_a alphonsi_n lib._n 6._o say_v that_o the_o priest_n hate_v their_o flock_n and_o care_v not_o to_o feed_v they_o but_o to_o poll_v they_o and_o mock_v they_o pastor_n say_v he_o odere_fw-la pecus_fw-la nec_fw-la pascere_fw-la curant_fw-la sed_fw-la tondere_fw-la greges_fw-la pecorique_fw-la illudere_fw-la tonso_fw-la catherine_n of_o sienna_n c._n 125._o say_v that_o religious_a man_n pretend_v angel_n life_n but_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v worse_a than_o devil_n religiosi_fw-la collocati_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o religione_fw-la velut_fw-la angeli_fw-la sed_fw-la quam_fw-la plurimi_fw-la sunt_fw-la daemonibus_fw-la deteriores_fw-la what_o the_o jebusite_n be_v i_o report_v i_o to_o the_o french_a carechisme_n of_o jesuite_n set_v out_o by_o a_o papist_n and_o a_o learned_a man_n and_o to_o the_o discourse_n of_o the_o secular_a priest_n against_o they_o they_o show_v they_o be_v covetous_a false_a proud_a cruel_a malicious_a and_o devil_n incarnate_a for_o the_o rest_n i_o refer_v they_o over_o to_o the_o 2._o book_n 2._o chap._n of_o my_o answer_n to_o rob._n parson_n his_o warn-word_n a_o man_n in_o who_o most_o of_o the_o capital_a vice_n of_o the_o jebusite_n may_v be_v specify_v the_o chief_a maintainer_n of_o popery_n in_o our_o time_n if_o we_o speak_v of_o lay_v man_n be_v charles_n the_o 9_o of_o france_n henry_n the_o 3._o his_o brother_n philip_n the_o 2._o of_o spain_n the_o duke_n of_o alva_n the_o duke_n of_o guise_n and_o his_o brethren_n the_o earl_n of_o westmoreland_n the_o head_n of_o the_o rebellion_n in_o the_o north._n but_o if_o we_o seek_v all_o history_n we_o shall_v hardly_o find_v worse_a man_n charles_n the_o 9_o be_v a_o notorious_a sweater_n a_o perfidious_a and_o licentious_a prince_n henry_n the_o 3._o be_v superstitious_a and_o altogether_o give_v to_o carnal_a delight_n what_o philip_n the_o 2._o be_v his_o wife_n and_o son_n and_o the_o innocent_n do_v to_o death_n by_o he_o for_o religion_n will_v speak_v one_o day_n the_o duke_n of_o guise_n and_o alita_n be_v cruel_a and_o bloody_a man_n perfidious_a and_o wicked_a atheist_n the_o first_o more_o give_v to_o pleasure_n the_o second_o to_o avarice_n charles_n of_o westmoreland_o be_v a_o rebel_n to_o his_o prince_n and_o a_o man_n consume_v with_o his_o own_o delight_n and_o pleasure_n be_v it_o not_o then_o a_o matter_n ridiculous_a that_o masspriest_n shall_v so_o excessive_o commend_v this_o religion_n that_o have_v such_o founder_n and_o favourer_n as_o these_o be_v and_o which_o as_o we_o see_v be_v invent_v and_o confirm_v by_o wicked_a man_n and_o uphold_v by_o fraud_n and_o force_n chap._n xlvii_o that_o popery_n in_o many_o point_n be_v more_o absurd_a and_o abominable_a than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o mahomet_n the_o impiety_n and_o abomination_n of_o turkish_a religion_n be_v so_o many_o that_o hardly_o can_v we_o recount_v they_o and_o so_o odious_a and_o horrible_a that_o no_o christian_n can_v take_v pleasure_n to_o hear_v they_o and_o yet_o if_o we_o please_v to_o look_v into_o the_o secret_a mystery_n of_o popery_n and_o to_o examine_v all_o the_o odious_a and_o abominable_a doctrine_n of_o the_o romish_a synagogue_n we_o may_v well_o make_v question_n whether_o of_o the_o two_o religion_n deserve_v more_o to_o be_v abhor_v and_o hate_v for_o first_o the_o turk_n do_v speak_v well_o of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o handle_v book_n of_o scripture_n with_o great_a reverence_n antony_n geoffrey_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n of_o turkish_a ceremony_n report_v how_o the_o turk_n account_n the_o gospel_n among_o holy_a scripture_n inter_fw-la sacras_fw-la literas_fw-la habent_fw-la nostra_fw-la evangelia_fw-la say_v he_o but_o the_o papist_n speak_v evil_a of_o scripture_n and_o call_v they_o sometime_o a_o dead_a and_o kill_a letter_n sometime_o a_o matter_n of_o strife_n sometime_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n they_o do_v also_o handle_v they_o very_o rude_o and_o without_o respect_n last_o they_o will_v not_o have_v they_o to_o be_v authentical_a in_o respect_n of_o we_o without_o the_o pope_n consignation_n and_o testimony_n the_o turk_n never_o burn_v their_o koran_n or_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n upon_o pretence_n of_o false_a translation_n but_o the_o papist_n have_v often_o time_n burn_v holy_a scripture_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n of_o france_n england_n germany_n and_o other_o place_n postell_n in_o his_o history_n of_o turk_n show_v how_o they_o teach_v that_o perfection_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o gifford_n lib._n caluinoturcis_n 3._o c._n 9_o confess_v that_o they_o believe_v all_o religion_n to_o be_v therein_o contain_v but_o papist_n do_v rather_o hope_v to_o find_v perfection_n in_o the_o rule_n of_o monk_n and_o friar_n then_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o therefore_o account_v rather_o the_o state_n of_o monk_n to_o be_v a_o state_n of_o perfection_n than_o the_o life_n of_o christian_n after_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o masspriest_n of_o trent_n do_v make_v tradition_n equal_a to_o scripture_n and_o common_o they_o deny_v scripture_n to_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o life_n and_o doctrine_n the_o doctor_n of_o turkish_a religion_n be_v never_o so_o simple_a as_o to_o think_v the_o tradition_n of_o their_o church_n to_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o koran_n of_o mahomet_n but_o the_o masspriest_n of_o trent_n will_v have_v tradition_n not_o write_v and_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v receive_v with_o equal_a affection_n such_o as_o blaspheme_v christ_n be_v punish_v by_o the_o turk_n most_o severe_o but_o papist_n tear_v he_o in_o piece_n with_o their_o blasphemy_n and_o such_o be_v think_v to_o be_v most_o clear_a of_o heresy_n which_o swear_v most_o wicked_o and_o blasphemous_o auerroes_n of_o all_o religion_n account_v popery_n to_o be_v most_o absurd_a for_o that_o papist_n worship_v a_o piece_n of_o a_o masse-cake_n for_o their_o god_n and_o yet_o present_o devour_v he_o and_o swallow_v he_o down_o into_o their_o belly_n no_o turk_n ever_o allow_v the_o eat_n of_o man_n flesh_n or_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o swallow_v down_o a_o whole_a and_o perfect_a man_n without_o hurt_n or_o diminution_n or_o bruise_v of_o his_o body_n but_o papist_n make_v their_o follower_n eater_n of_o man_n flesh_n and_o say_v that_o every_o one_o eat_v the_o sacrament_n do_v eat_v up_o christ_n body_n whole_a and_o entire_a and_o yet_o believe_v that_o they_o neither_o break_v his_o flesh_n nor_o digest_v it_o every_o mahometan_a albeit_o he_o believe_v not_o christ_n to_o be_v god_n yet_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o dog_n and_o hog_n and_o other_o brute_n beast_n may_v eat_v christ_n body_n but_o the_o papist_n albeit_o according_a to_o the_o christian_a faith_n they_o